Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n apostle_n bishop_n timothy_n 4,167 5 10.7647 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12701 An ansvvere to Master Iohn De Albines, notable discourse against heresies (as his frendes call his booke) compiled by Thomas Spark pastor of Blechley in the county of Buck Sparke, Thomas, 1548-1616.; Albin de Valsergues, Jean d', d. 1566. Marques de la vraye église catholique. English. 1591 (1591) STC 23019; ESTC S117703 494,957 544

There are 49 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o picture_n of_o jesus_n or_o soon_o of_o the_o saint_n yet_o he_o condemn_v it_o as_o contrary_a both_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o christian_a religion_n &_o therefore_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o such_o thing_n any_o more_o for_o it_o become_v he_o to_o banish_v such_o superstition_n which_o be_v unseemly_a for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yea_o lactantius_n lib._n 2_o cap._n 19_o of_o his_o divine_a institution_n say_v flat_o that_o their_o can_v be_v no_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v a_o image_n he_o live_v &_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 320._o and_o s_o augustine_n who_o live_v after_o all_o these_o before_o name_v for_o he_o die_v not_o before_o the_o year_n 430._o de_fw-la consensu_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap_n 2._o write_v that_o they_o even_o deserve_v to_o err_v which_o seek_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n not_o in_o book_n but_o in_o paint_a wall_n yea_o gregory_n the_o great_a as_o they_o call_v he_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o the_o paint_n of_o story_n for_o a_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n be_v think_v tolerable_a yet_o he_o lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o &_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o to_o serenus_n slat_o condemn_v the_o adore_a &_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o whereas_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o tolerate_n of_o historical_a paint_n of_o they_o through_o the_o superstition_n &_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n within_o short_a time_n by_o little_a &_o little_a the_o worship_v of_o they_o grow_v to_o be_v too_o much_o use_v &_o like_v of_o many_o especial_o in_o these_o western_a part_n &_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o by_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 700._o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o three_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n consist_v of_o 330._o bishop_n there_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o council_n decree_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v quite_o remove_v out_o of_o church_n &_o burn_v &_o severe_o he_o punish_v those_o which_o notwithstanding_o will_v persevere_v in_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o the_o same_o course_n take_v his_o successor_n constantine_n by_o another_o great_a council_n hold_v their_o ratify_v the_o former_a &_o two_o emperor_n more_o succeed_v he_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o while_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o stand_v they_o what_o they_o may_v &_o decree_v as_o fast_o for_o the_o retain_v &_o worship_v of_o they_o as_o they_o can_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n blondus_n &_o other_o howbeit_o though_o also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o irene_n &_o the_o nonage_n of_o her_o son_n constantine_n in_o the_o east_n through_o the_o suggestion_n of_o therasius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n they_o get_v there_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o nicaea_n consist_v of_o three_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o bishop_n where_o to_o curry_v favour_n again_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o upon_o the_o former_a occasion_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n &_o other_o have_v be_v a_o shrewd_a traitorous_a mean_n to_o cause_v these_o western_a part_n to_o revolt_v from_o the_o empire_n they_o decree_v according_a to_o their_o humour_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o image_n yet_o africa_n &_o asia_n the_o great_a can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o receive_v those_o canon_n there_o make_v yea_o &_o that_o more_o be_v though_o by_o that_o time_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v charles_n the_o great_a very_o much_o behold_v to_o he_o in_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o translate_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n unto_o he_o so_o be_v those_o canon_n in_o this_o point_n mislike_v &_o contradict_v here_o in_o thes_n western_a part_n that_o a_o council_n in_o his_o time_n &_o by_o his_o mean_n as_o the_o emperor_n be_v call_v at_o francford_n whereunto_o come_v many_o bishop_n of_o italy_n france_n germany_n &_o other_o country_n yet_o there_o even_o for_o this_o point_n be_v that_o council_n of_o nice_a reject_v &_o conden_v as_o a_o wicked_a council_n witness_n both_o regino_n lib._n 2._o anno_fw-la 794._o &_o also_o one_o hinckmare_n not_o long_o after_o those_o time_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n write_v against_o another_o of_o his_o name_n they_o bishop_n of_o jandune_n or_o lavedune_n as_o some_o call_v it_o ca._n 20._o where_o he_o for_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o to_o be_v true_a write_v that_o the_o bishop_n their_o assemble_v cause_v a_o book_n of_o purpose_n to_o be_v write_v &_o send_v to_o rome_n contain_v at_o large_a a_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o reason_n use_v for_o image_n at_o nicaea_n which_o in_o his_o young_a year_n he_o see_v &_o which_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o pope_n library_n augustine_n steuchus_n confess_v to_o lie_v there_o write_v in_o ancient_a character_n the_o donatione_n constantini_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 59_o nu_fw-la 60._o and_o roger_n hovoden_n who_o live_v 400._o year_n ago_o in_o his_o continuation_n of_o bedeas_n story_n in_o the_o year_n 792._o show_v how_o charles_n send_v the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n of_o nice_a hither_o wherein_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v decree_v that_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v adore_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n utter_o detest_v report_v that_o one_o albirus_n here_o write_v a_o epistle_n against_o that_o determination_n marvellous_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o carry_v into_o france_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o the_o rather_o it_o shall_v seem_v short_o after_o charles_n think_v meet_v to_o call_v the_o foresay_a council_n at_o francford_n all_o these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o never_o be_v image_n pillar_n and_o cross_n more_o idolatrous_o decree_v to_o be_v worship_v their_o nor_o ever_o be_v idol_n more_o gross_o adore_v of_o heretic_n or_o the_o very_a pagan_n and_o heathen_a than_o they_o have_v be_v &_o yet_o be_v of_o superstitious_a papist_n for_o they_o crouch_v &_o kneel_v unto_o they_o present_a offering_n before_o they_o they_o run_v a_o pilgrimage_n unto_o they_o and_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o who_o image_n and_o monument_n they_o be_v though_o in_o a_o other_o manner_n not_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o they_o who_o remembrance_n they_o be_v but_o indeed_o if_o in_o worship_v of_o they_o they_o do_v not_o principal_o respect_v the_o image_n themselves_o why_o shall_v there_o not_o be_v as_o great_a devotion_n as_o many_o pilgrimage_n &_o as_o great_a offering_n present_v &_o yield_v to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n mary_n or_o of_o any_o other_o aswell_o in_o one_o place_n as_o in_o a_o other_o well_o howsoever_o they_o will_v do_v wicked_o herein_o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v seek_v to_o colour_v the_o matter_n such_o in_o truth_n all_o the_o world_n see_v herein_o have_v be_v their_o deal_n that_o euthymius_n in_o his_o panoply_n have_v never_o more_o cause_v to_o name_v the_o armenian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v idolater_n to_o the_o cross_n for_o their_o gross_a and_o superstitious_a worship_v of_o it_o than_o we_o have_v general_o to_o count_v and_o call_v the_o romanist_n flat_a idolater_n for_o their_o behaviour_n towards_o it_o and_o other_o image_n also_o thus_o then_o hope_v by_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v this_o point_n that_o not_o only_o thou_o may_v see_v goodreader_n when_o and_o how_o this_o point_n of_o popery_n first_o come_v in_o but_o how_o and_o by_o who_o it_o have_v be_v oppugn_v but_o consequent_o also_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v herein_o destitute_a both_o of_o scripture_n father_n consent_n of_o christian_a region_n and_o all_o that_o she_o brag_v of_o let_v we_o see_v if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o like_a concern_v the_o other_o point_n of_o force_a single_a life_n upon_o the_o clergy_n which_o she_o hold_v to_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o holy_a a_o ordinance_n as_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n without_o deadly_a sin_n it_o may_v be_v transgress_v even_o in_o this_o as_o in_o the_o former_a if_o we_o search_v the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n well_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o have_v very_o ancient_a heretic_n to_o be_v their_o first_o father_n &_o leader_n for_o the_o tacianist_n common_o call_v encratites_n of_o their_o abstinence_n from_o marriage_n &_o certain_a other_o thing_n who_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o forty_o two_o be_v great_a condemner_n of_o marriage_n as_o appear_v in_o aug._n ad_fw-la quodvult_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o in_o epiphanius_n write_v of_o they_o heresi_n 46._o after_o they_o spring_v up_o the_o manichee_n who_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v enemy_n to_o marriage_n but_o not_o so_o universal_o as_o the_o former_a for_o they_o permit_v it_o to_o other_o and_o restrain_v only_o their_o clergy_n from_o it_o who_o they_o call_v their_o elect_a as_o august_n witness_v of_o they_o epist_n 74._o but_o indeed_o as_o many_o as_o
that_o they_o come_v to_o they_o by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n by_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n continue_v in_o one_o catholic_a faith_n down_o from_o christ_n to_o this_o present_a time_n thus_o childish_o beg_v in_o one_o piece_n of_o one_o short_a sentence_n these_o four_o great_a point_n all_o which_o in_o this_o case_n be_v betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o in_o question_n namely_o that_o their_o officer_n all_o of_o they_o come_v to_o their_o room_n by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n that_o they_o have_v right_a succession_n right_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o sound_n and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n and_o yet_o though_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o we_o constant_o deny_v all_o these_o yet_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o come_v lawful_o to_o their_o office_n he_o only_o naked_o and_o bare_o affirm_v they_o as_o though_o he_o presume_v that_o he_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o pythagoras_n in_o the_o conceit_n of_o all_o his_o reader_n that_o for_o he_o once_o to_o say_v it_o be_v enough_o and_o enough_o again_o for_o by_o and_o by_o after_o that_o thus_o he_o have_v only_o say_v have_v use_v neither_o proof_n nor_o colour_n of_o proof_n to_o back_o his_o say_n he_o slip_v into_o another_o matter_n not_o yet_o call_v in_o question_n whither_o a_o visible_a know_v and_o always_o a_o demonstrable_a personal_a and_o local_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o perpetual_a continuance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o truth_n therein_o and_o thus_o he_o wind_v from_o matter_n to_o matter_n leave_v always_o that_o unproved_a which_o he_o have_v most_o need_n to_o have_v prove_v labour_v &_o sweat_v continual_o about_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o which_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v he_o yet_o he_o may_v well_o enough_o loose_v his_o cause_n as_o for_o example_n have_v enter_v into_o the_o foresay_a matter_n in_o manner_n before_o say_v in_o 3._o or_o 4._o whole_a chapter_n follow_v he_o show_v how_o the_o truth_n be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n how_o profitable_a their_o ministry_n be_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o &_o to_o settle_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n that_o the_o ancient_a tread_a way_n by_o christ_n sheep_n down_o from_o christ_n to_o this_o day_n that_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n that_o the_o faith_n which_o in_o irenaeus_n and_o augustine_n time_n be_v hold_v and_o teach_v at_o rome_n &_o have_v unto_o their_o time_n be_v continue_v from_o christ_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n be_v the_o way_n and_o faith_n that_o a_o catholic_a man_n must_v live_v and_o die_v in_o whosoever_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_n in_o which_o proposition_n no_o marvel_n though_o he_o go_v on_o roundly_o for_o he_o have_v wind_n and_o weather_n with_o he_o &_o none_o of_o we_o gainesay_v he_o yea_o these_o thing_n be_v right_o understand_v we_o constant_o affirm_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v all_o grant_v he_o what_o be_v he_o near_o his_o cause_n see_v as_o yet_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o never_o can_v nor_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o their_o pastor_n succeed_v christ_n his_o apostle_n or_o the_o ancient_a holy_a bishop_n &_o pastor_n that_o be_v before_o irenaeus_n &_o augustine_n time_n in_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n that_o they_o teach_v but_o herein_o be_v his_o popish_a subtle_o that_o stand_v thus_o upon_o these_o point_n he_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n grant_v he_o all_o these_o that_o their_o succession_n of_o priest_n &_o bishop_n be_v that_o succession_n of_o pastor_n so_o profitable_a for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o church_n that_o their_o romish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v be_v that_o ancient_a way_n that_o christ_n sheep_n have_v always_o tread_v &_o so_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n which_o in_o irenaeus_n &_o augustine_n time_n they_o &_o the_o holy_a pastor_n &_o bishop_n at_o rome_n and_o else_o where_o have_v sound_o succeed_v one_o another_o from_o the_o apostle_n continue_v in_o unto_o that_o time_n which_o be_v thing_n whereof_o not_o one_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o confederate_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a indeed_o to_o prove_v and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v john_n the_o albine_n think_v it_o good_a policy_n see_v these_o thing_n can_v be_v get_v no_o otherwise_o to_o try_v whether_o he_o can_v get_v they_o thus_o by_o flat_a beg_n of_o they_o and_o it_o seem_v also_o that_o he_o presume_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v only_o to_o such_o liberal_a man_n door_n that_o all_o these_o shall_v be_v grant_v and_o give_v he_o even_o at_o the_o very_a first_o ask_v for_o always_o after_o he_o behave_v himself_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o without_o all_o peradventure_o he_o have_v they_o all_o grant_v he_o only_o a_o little_a in_o his_o thirty_o seven_o chapter_n belike_o somewhat_o grow_v ashamed_a of_o his_o shameless_a beg_v all_o the_o while_n before_o he_o begin_v to_o make_v show_n that_o if_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o hard_a heart_a as_o to_o deny_v he_o that_o their_o pastor_n doctrine_n and_o church_n be_v sound_a &_o catholic_a that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v they_o so_o to_o be_v whither_o such_o will_n or_o no._n and_o yet_o even_o there_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o though_o indeed_o he_o brag_v that_o he_o can_v and_o will_v but_o for_o be_v too_o tedious_a to_o his_o reader_n justify_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o number_n of_o doctor_n holy_a confessor_n and_o martyr_n he_o only_o by_o muster_v of_o a_o sort_n of_o dumb_a doctor_n upon_o the_o stage_n make_v his_o poor_a reader_n believe_v that_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o he_o they_o speak_v direct_o to_o justify_v their_o ceremony_n their_o auricular_a confession_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o the_o dead_a as_o though_o these_o be_v the_o principal_a matter_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o us._n but_o doubtless_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o no_o one_o of_o his_o reader_n among_o a_o hundred_o will_v and_o can_v turn_v the_o place_n and_o so_o try_v whither_o the_o man_n he_o name_v make_v there_o so_o for_o he_o or_o no._n for_o otherwise_o for_o shame_n he_o will_v not_o have_v quote_v they_o so_o negligent_o false_o and_o corrupt_o as_o when_o i_o come_v to_o that_o place_n i_o shall_v show_v thou_o he_o have_v these_o thing_n consider_v christian_n reader_n thou_o must_v be_v very_o simple_a and_o have_v before_o hand_n thy_o mind_n whole_o forestall_v with_o his_o false_a principle_n or_o else_o he_o shall_v win_v with_o thou_o little_a credit_n to_o his_o cause_n or_o disgrace_n to_o we_o howbeit_o see_v both_o his_o whole_a drift_n and_o his_o publisher_n in_o his_o preface_n be_v as_o it_o evident_o thereby_o appear_v under_o the_o odious_a name_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n to_o disgrace_v we_o and_o the_o truth_n that_o we_o profess_v as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o once_o to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n whither_o they_o and_o their_o crew_n be_v the_o only_a sound_a catholic_n and_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n before_o i_o let_v thou_o proceed_v &_o come_v to_o the_o view_n of_o his_o declamation_n make_v to_o that_o end_n and_o of_o my_o answer_n thereunto_o this_o upon_o good_a and_o most_o clear_a ground_n i_o protest_v unto_o thou_o and_o assure_v thou_o what_o brag_v soever_o he_o or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o fellow_n make_v of_o their_o popish_a and_o romish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v process_v among_o they_o beside_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o can_v or_o may_v be_v say_v against_o it_o it_o be_v such_o a_o religion_n and_o their_o church_n the_o upholder_n thereof_o such_o a_o dame_n as_o be_v the_o very_a nurse_n and_o bawd_n of_o monstrous_a impiety_n as_o be_v intolerable_o injurious_a to_o the_o right_n of_o the_o good_a estate_n of_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o their_o people_n and_o as_o last_o howsoever_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o holiness_n it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o indeed_o cunning_o under_o the_o colour_n thereof_o aim_v at_o no_o mark_n more_o then_o to_o advance_v the_o pride_n pomp_n and_o gain_v of_o her_o lover_n the_o first_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o their_o doctrine_n of_o their_o pope_n supermacy_n be_v such_o as_o that_o for_o money_n he_o may_v pardon_v any_o sin_n as_o their_o practice_n teach_v either_o commit_v or_o to_o be_v commit_v yea_o their_o very_a hedge-prieste_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o power_n of_o absolution_n give_v unto_o they_o upon_o penance_n do_v how_o light_a soever_o if_o it_o so_o seem_v good_a unto_o they_o have_v and_o do_v take_v upon_o they_o marvelous_o that_o way_n to_o breed_v immunity_n and_o impunity_n by_o their_o absolve_a who_o &_o for_o
sometime_o less_o or_o howsoever_o in_o like_a sort_n they_o have_v vary_v both_o as_o touch_v the_o clergy_n and_o the_o people_n that_o shall_v have_v to_o deal_v therein_o wherein_o they_o have_v have_v as_o many_o diversity_n as_o about_o the_o former_a or_o final_o whatsoever_o concern_v other_o circumstance_n of_o their_o election_n they_o have_v think_v good_a to_o add_v or_o detract_v from_o the_o ordinary_a way_n before_o in_o force_n they_o have_v neither_o long_o continue_v any_o one_o ordinary_a way_n neither_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o continuance_n thereof_o have_v they_o follow_v inviolable_o that_o way_n and_o as_o it_o have_v be_v with_o that_o chief_a sea_n of_o they_o so_o have_v it_o be_v with_o other_o inferior_a place_n so_o that_o no_o constancy_n have_v be_v in_o any_o of_o their_o ordinary_a way_n of_o entrance_n nor_o yet_o any_o due_a care_n either_o careful_o to_o observe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n or_o their_o own_o decree_n make_v for_o that_o purpose_n in_o their_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n by_o sundry_a canon_n and_o chapter_n therein_o set_v down_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o there_o assemble_v consider_v what_o horrible_a abuse_n there_o have_v be_v in_o the_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o unfit_a bishop_n and_o priest_n among_o they_o think_v it_o most_o needful_a to_o prevent_v the_o like_a for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v to_o devise_v &_o to_o enact_v sundry_a holesone_n canon_n to_o breed_v a_o learned_a preach_a ministry_n and_o to_o procure_v a_o election_n and_o ordination_n thence_o forth_o for_o they_o as_o free_a from_o corruption_n as_o in_o their_o wisdom_n they_o can_v conceive_v but_o yet_o who_o know_v not_o but_o that_o those_o canon_n have_v since_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v as_o careless_o look_v unto_o and_o herein_o keep_v among_o they_o as_o though_o they_o have_v never_o be_v make_v wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n let_v albine_n and_o never_o so_o many_o more_o of_o they_o brag_v that_o they_o enter_v by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n unless_o thereby_o he_o mean_v a_o way_n that_o ordinary_o be_v naught_o and_o corrupt_v he_o speak_v more_o than_o ever_o he_o can_v prove_v and_o so_o therein_o have_v say_v nothing_o to_o prove_v the_o come_n of_o their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n unto_o their_o place_n to_o be_v lawful_a and_o good_a and_o yet_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v he_o their_z bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n but_o if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v so_o who_o neither_o have_v a_o lawful_a way_n of_o entrance_n to_o their_o office_n nor_o yet_o their_o office_n be_v themselves_o of_o god_n ordinance_n than_o it_o be_v apparent_a even_o by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v already_o that_o neither_o their_o bishop_n nor_o priest_n be_v right_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n their_o bishop_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a by_o their_o usage_n and_o practice_n challenge_v and_o take_v unto_o themselves_o a_o office_n of_o another_o essence_n and_o nature_n than_o the_o office_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v leave_v and_o prescribe_v to_o true_a bishop_n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v it_o with_o their_o priest_n for_o one_o universal_a and_o head_n bishop_n over_o all_o other_o such_z as_o they_o take_v their_o pope_n to_o be_v christ_n never_o ordain_v for_o he_o make_v all_o his_o apostle_n by_o give_v they_o all_o equal_a one_o and_o selfsame_o commission_n his_o officer_n equal_o to_o bear_v for_o their_o time_n the_o general_a and_o universal_a care_n of_o oversight_n rule_v order_v and_o direct_v his_o church_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o full_a perfection_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v dispose_v this_o way_n in_o bestow_v church_n officer_n upon_o his_o church_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o consummate_v it_o unto_o the_o end_n beside_o these_o as_o inferior_a minister_n he_o give_v only_o as_o you_o may_v read_v ephesian_n the_o four_o euamgelist_n prophet_n pastor_n &_o teacher_n where_o neither_o your_o pope_n cardinal_n nor_o masspriest_n be_v once_o remember_v the_o matter_n wherein_o the_o full_a execution_n of_o the_o off_o ce_fw-fr of_o all_o the_o ministery_n consist_v that_o christ_n have_v leave_v unto_o his_o church_n be_v due_o &_o sound_o to_o feed_v god_n people_n commit_v unto_o they_o with_o heavenly_a food_n by_o painful_a and_o diligent_a preach_v unto_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o minister_a unto_o they_o the_o sacrament_n and_o right_o and_o oder_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o administration_n of_o ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o discipline_n which_o be_v thing_n that_o the_o great_a and_o fat_a in_o your_o romish_a synagog_n think_v themselves_o little_a or_o no_o whit_n at_o all_o bind_v unto_o these_o thing_n be_v too_o base_a matter_n for_o your_o pope_n to_o be_v occupy_v about_o their_o office_n consist_v and_o therefore_o they_o according_o must_v busy_v themselves_o in_o other_o matter_n as_o namely_o in_o make_v and_o mar_n in_o set_v up_o &_o put_v down_o secular_a prince_n as_o they_o call_v they_o in_o study_v by_o all_o mean_v fair_a and_o foul_a to_o maintain_v and_o to_o enlarge_v their_o authority_n and_o patrimony_n &_o in_o devise_v by_o a_o thousand_o way_n though_o never_o so_o covetous_o tyramnous_o &_o insatiable_o to_o gather_v together_o infinite_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o buy_v or_o to_o win_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n great_a principality_n for_o their_o bastard_n nephew_n and_o niece_n to_o spend_v in_o the_o persecute_v &_o subdue_a better_a christian_n they_o themselves_o to_o build_v sumptuous_a palace_n banquet_v house_n &_o temple_n to_o shroud_v idolatry_n &_o idol_n in_o costly_a beautify_v the_o better_a to_o entice_v man_n for_o their_o further_a advantage_n to_o commit_v spiritual_a whoardome_n with_o they_o in_o and_o about_o these_o thing_n your_o pope_n now_o these_o many_o 100_o year_n have_v spend_v their_o wit_n &_o all_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o chronicler_n of_o any_o credit_n can_v and_o will_v testify_v if_o they_o have_v any_o leisure_n from_o these_o affair_n than_o they_o must_v show_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v be_v idle_a and_o fruitless_a in_o devise_v some_o new_a ceremony_n in_o add_v some_o patch_n or_o other_o to_o their_o church_n service_n in_o proclaim_v the_o cross_n against_o the_o turk_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n in_o publish_v some_o jubilee_n and_o indulgence_n in_o set_v up_o some_o new_a order_n of_o religious_a man_n for_o the_o better_a support_n of_o their_o kingdom_n or_o at_o least_o in_o plot_v and_o contrive_v some_o conspiracy_n or_o treacherous_a devise_n to_o supplant_v and_o murder_v some_o christian_a prince_n that_o have_v draw_v or_o be_v like_a to_o draw_v his_o people_n from_o their_o antichristian_a religion_n and_o your_o other_o bishop_n occupation_n lie_v most_o in_o blessing_n with_o their_o finger_n in_o consecrate_v of_o their_o unholy_a holy_a chrism_n in_o christen_v of_o bell_n and_o church_n in_o order_v unorderlie_a and_o contrary_a to_o their_o own_o canon_n of_o a_o idolatrous_a and_o new_a find_v sort_n of_o priest_n &_o in_o run_v up_o &_o down_o fond_o and_o superstitious_o to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o count_v it_o of_o confirmation_n scarce_o the_o tithe_n of_o they_o ever_o have_v either_o skill_n or_o will_n to_o preach_v and_o as_o for_o your_o cardinal_n as_o they_o be_v of_o a_o order_n but_o of_o a_o late_a devise_n so_o by_o their_o behaviour_n we_o can_v not_o judge_v their_o office_n to_o lie_v in_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o to_o serve_v the_o pope_n turn_n for_o the_o better_a set_v forth_o of_o his_o magnificence_n at_o home_n and_o to_o be_v his_o agent_n in_o foreign_a kingdom_n the_o easely_o to_o contrive_v his_o purpose_n their_o they_o be_v and_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n their_o first_o nativity_n consider_v notable_a fellow_n to_o haunt_v and_o maintain_v the_o stew_n at_o rome_n and_o to_o devour_v and_o to_o consume_v in_o riot_n vanity_n and_o impiety_n all_o the_o bishopric_n and_o benefice_n that_o they_o can_v heap_v together_o without_o any_o care_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o use_n of_o they_o have_v be_v to_o brawl_v and_o to_o breed_v schism_n in_o choose_v of_o pope_n and_o to_o stir_n all_o coal_n and_o to_o move_v every_o stone_n as_o fast_o as_o they_o can_v one_o after_o another_o to_o thrust_v into_o that_o place_n now_o to_o come_v to_o your_o ordinary_a priest_n though_o the_o matter_n of_o teach_v and_o minister_a of_o sacrament_n especial_o be_v post_v over_o unto_o they_o and_o unto_o friar_n yet_o either_o be_v they_o not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o which_o be_v
must_v needs_o be_v good_a and_o lawful_a and_o we_o the_o plain_a contrary_n howbeit_o if_o we_o examine_v this_o point_n thorough_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o have_v as_o weak_a help_n hence_o as_o from_o the_o other_o or_o from_o any_o thing_n else_o for_o whither_o they_o understand_v by_o right_a succession_n succession_n without_o interruption_n in_o place_n person_n or_o office_n several_o or_o joint_o together_o neither_o can_v their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o they_o be_v now_o true_o say_v they_o have_v it_o nor_o yet_o if_o they_o can_v they_o be_v go_v as_o they_o be_v from_o the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o right_a apostolic_a succession_n namely_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a truth_n be_v they_o ever_o the_o better_a and_o of_o the_o contrary_a though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o true_a that_o we_o can_v not_o deduce_v unto_o our_o present_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o time_n without_o interruption_n the_o line_n of_o succession_n in_o place_n person_n and_o office_n yet_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v as_o we_o be_v that_o we_o hold_v one_o and_o selfsame_o doctrine_n with_o they_o that_o will_v justify_v our_o church_n and_o minister_n sufficient_o notwithstanding_o the_o want_n of_o the_o former_a this_o be_v quick_o and_o easy_o say_v you_o will_v say_v but_o these_o thing_n can_v so_o ready_o be_v prove_v i_o grant_v to_o prove_v they_o will_v cost_v the_o more_o pain_n otherwise_o the_o proof_n be_v ready_a and_o pregnant_a enough_o and_o that_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o if_o with_o any_o indifferency_n that_o which_o i_o shall_v write_v to_o that_o end_n be_v mark_v shall_v ere_o it_o be_v long_o appear_v i_o say_v therefore_o first_o that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o they_o be_v now_o and_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n whatsoever_o they_o brag_v no_o not_o their_o very_a pope_n unto_o who_o right_a succession_n stapleton_n and_o other_o trust_n most_o have_v any_o right_a succession_n either_o to_o any_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n in_o place_n person_n or_o office_n for_o first_o they_o can_v never_o sound_o prove_v the_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o strong_a to_o the_o contrary_a &_o their_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o story_n so_o disagree_v and_o variable_a in_o all_o circumstance_n that_o peter_n the_o apostle_n who_o successor_n their_o pope_n claim_n to_o be_v and_o from_o who_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n among_o they_o have_v their_o vocation_n and_o authority_n derive_v be_v either_o ever_o at_o rome_n or_o be_v there_o that_o have_v lay_v aside_o his_o apostleship_n which_o be_v the_o great_a and_o high_a office_n he_o sit_v there_o as_o bishop_n second_o unto_o this_o day_n they_o can_v agree_v of_o the_o order_n of_o succeed_a one_o another_o betwixt_o linus_n cletus_n clement_n &_o anaclet_n vrspergensis_n in_o the_o life_n of_o claudius_n have_v notable_o &_o at_o large_a set_v out_o both_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o also_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o truth_n three_o none_o of_o any_o learning_n and_o read_v can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o know_v that_o they_o have_v not_o succeed_v one_o another_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o day_n wtout_fw-fr interruption_n always_o neither_o in_o place_n person_n nor_o office_n for_o beside_o that_o sundry_a time_n many_o pope_n for_o some_o short_a time_n have_v sit_v from_o rome_n it_o be_v notorious_o know_v that_o clement_n the_o 5._o about_o the_o year_n 1305._o translate_v the_o pope_n see_v from_o rome_n into_o france_n to_o auinion_n where_o it_o continue_v above_o 70._o year_n and_o as_o for_o immediate_a &_o orderly_a succession_n of_o person_n among_o they_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a true_o &_o certain_o to_o define_v &_o set_v down_o that_o see_v that_o see_v have_v not_o only_o stand_v vacant_a day_n week_n month_n and_o year_n sometime_o 2._o sometime_o more_o but_o also_o there_o have_v be_v at_o once_o so_o often_o not_o only_o 2._o but_o often_o 3._o &_o sometime_o more_o every_o one_o strive_v with_o his_o favourer_n to_o be_v account_v to_o be_v the_o right_a pope_n and_o last_o by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v before_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n of_o pope_n cardinal_n bishop_n &_o priest_n their_o practice_n prove_v daily_o my_o word_n therein_o to_o be_v most_o true_a how_o dare_v any_o man_n that_o have_v any_o fear_n of_o god_n once_o say_v or_o think_v that_o they_o in_o their_o office_n have_v any_o affinity_n with_o the_o apostle_n or_o any_o apostolic_a man_n light_a &_o darkness_n be_v not_o more_o differ_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o than_o the_o office_n of_o apostle_n euamgelist_n prophet_n pastor_n &_o doctor_n in_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a &_o apostolic_a church_n differ_v from_o these_o office_n of_o they_o second_o whereas_o i_o say_v though_o yet_o they_o can_v which_o now_o you_o see_v they_o can_v true_o say_v that_o they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n &_o apostolic_a man_n in_o place_n person_n and_o office_n yet_o they_o be_v never_o the_o near_o my_o reason_n thereof_o be_v these_o first_o i_o find_v that_o wicked_a people_n &_o wicked_a priest_n in_o the_o scripture_n often_o have_v have_v this_o kind_n of_o succession_n to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o against_o the_o true_a prophet_n and_o against_o christ_n himself_o as_o you_o may_v see_v jerem._n 7._o vers_fw-la 4._o &_o cap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 8._o john_n 8._o v._n 44._o vriah_n the_o priest_n in_o king_n ahaz_n time_n have_v this_o succession_n from_o aaron_n and_o yet_o he_o to_o please_v that_o idolatrous_a king_n set_v up_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n a_o altar_n according_a to_o the_o pattern_n that_o the_o king_n have_v send_v he_o of_o one_o that_o he_o have_v see_v at_o damascus_n 2._o king_n 16.10.11_o the_o high_a priest_n that_o withstand_v always_o christ_n &_o his_o doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o end_n crucify_v he_o have_v this_o kind_n of_o sucession_n &_o yet_o none_o of_o these_o or_o their_o do_n be_v any_o thing_n the_o more_o justifiable_a for_o this_o again_o though_o stapleton_n lib._n 13._o doctrinalium_fw-la principiorun_n confess_v that_o the_o greek_n have_v be_v scismatiques_n and_o heretic_n this_o 500_o year_n yet_o he_o &_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o of_o any_o read_n know_v that_o not_o they_o only_a but_o also_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o sundry_a other_o famous_a church_n in_o the_o world_n all_o which_o likewise_o they_o hold_v be_v scismatiques_n and_o heretic_n can_v &_o do_v make_v as_o great_a show_n of_o this_o kind_n of_o succession_n for_o the_o countenance_v of_o their_o ministry_n and_o church_n as_o they_o themselves_o for_o they_o know_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v deduce_v his_o local_a and_o personal_a succession_n from_o andrew_n the_o apostle_n &_o that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n now_o sit_v at_o damascus_n do_v likewise_o his_o from_o peter_n which_o he_o may_v do_v more_o certain_o than_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o sit_v at_o auinion_n can_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a gal._n 2._o ver_fw-la 11._o even_o by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o that_o peter_n be_v at_o antioch_n &_o so_o be_v it_o not_o that_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n in_o like_a manner_n they_o know_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n now_o hold_v his_o seat_n at_o alcairum_n derive_v he_o from_o the_o evangelist_n saint_n mark_n and_o ignorant_a they_o be_v not_o that_o the_o arrian_n prevail_a as_o they_o do_v and_o in_o the_o end_n have_v get_v the_o most_o seat_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v furnish_v with_o man_n of_o their_o damnable_a opinion_n that_o they_o for_o that_o time_n be_v able_a to_o hold_v this_o plea_n aswell_o as_o themselves_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a they_o will_v grant_v that_o none_o of_o these_o be_v therefore_o or_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v allow_v &_o justify_v they_o will_v say_v i_o be_o sure_a for_o so_o i_o find_v they_o plain_o to_o reply_v in_o their_o writing_n yea_o even_a john_n de_fw-fr albine_n himself_o afterward_o cap._n 7._o that_o though_o these_o all_o can_v and_o do_v plead_v succession_n in_o place_n person_n and_o office_n that_o yet_o it_o can_v justify_v they_o because_o not_o only_o they_o have_v hold_v some_o of_o they_o detestable_a heresy_n but_o present_o also_o do_v still_o indeed_o i_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o i_o read_v that_o macedonius_n nestorius_n and_o paulus_n sergius_n abrupt_a the_o line_n of_o right_a succession_n by_o their_o heresy_n at_o constantinople_n that_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la do_v the_o like_a at_o antioch_n and_o that_o dioscorus_n and_o petrus_n moggus_n do_v likewise_o at_o alexanderia_n and_o
according_a to_o the_o succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n unto_o who_o only_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o which_o say_v he_o be_v come_v to_o us._n this_o say_v irenaeus_n do_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v withstand_v the_o valentinian_o and_o the_o marcioniste_n which_o be_v great_a heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n apostle_n a_o curse_a gloss_n for_o it_o corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v good_a warrant_n in_o the_o write_v word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o continue_v till_o their_o time_n he_o say_v likewise_o unto_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o do_v persuade_v and_o provoke_v those_o that_o speak_v against_o tradition_n he_o write_v as_o much_o more_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v book_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o tedious_a to_o set_v forth_o in_o one_o book_n the_o successor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o one_o by_o one_o we_o do●●●●●_n throw_v those_o that_o for_o vain_a glory_n do_v seek_v to_o gather_v disciple_n together_o touch_v they_o contrary_a to_o that_o that_o do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o we_o do_v show_v to_o they_o by_o the_o say_v tradition_n and_o by_o the_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o be_v come_v to_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o two_o glorious_a martyr_n and_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n &_o saint_n paul_n these_o be_v his_o word_n in_o his_o three_o book_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la say_v haereses_fw-la the_o three_o you_o shall_v say_v the_o five_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_v chapter_n he_o say_v thus_o all_o these_o that_o will_v understand_v the_o truth_n may_v present_o regard_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v manifest_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o we_o can_v count_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n till_o our_o day_n which_o have_v neither_o know_v nor_o teach_v any_o thing_n like_o unto_o the_o fable_n and_o tale_n that_o these_o do_v preach_v unto_o us._n untrue_o us._n if_o you_o say_v so_o you_o say_v it_o without_o cause_n and_o untrue_o not_o without_o cause_n we_o may_v now_o a_o day_n say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o lutheran_n caluiniste_n &_o other_o sect_n of_o our_o time_n after_o this_o he_o do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v rome_n if_o the_o pope_n ever_o since_o have_v be_v like_o these_o you_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v need_v to_o strive_v as_o we_o do_v from_o saint_n peter_n unto_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o he_o do_v affirm_v that_o that_o number_n do_v suffice_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o marcian_n and_o valentinian_n be_v false_a &_o very_a hurtful_a because_o that_o it_o be_v unknown_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o receive_v or_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n be_v under_o the_o governance_n of_o any_o of_o th●se_a pope_n then_o with_o great_a reason_n ought_v prescription_n to_o take_v place_n against_o be_v against_o true_a but_o such_o you_o shall_v never_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o the_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a perditious_a heretic_n the_o v._o chapter_n you_o must_v remember_v that_o vincentius_n live_v 1000_o year_n ago_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n &_o that_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o time_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o ancient_a faith_n that_o then_o be_v whereof_o if_o you_o understand_v he_o we_o say_v as_o he_o say_v and_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o join_v and_o hold_v communion_n with_o that_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o than_o you_o but_o then_o his_o say_n make_v direct_o against_o you_o for_o neither_o your_o church_n nor_o faith_n be_v in_o his_o day_n we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heretic_n as_o you_o show_v in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o he_o but_o withal_o then_o you_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o he_o live_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o who_o succession_n he_o allege_v continue_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n from_o which_o long_o ago_o your_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o have_v fall_v by_o antichristian_a apostasy_n for_o that_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n and_o those_o bishop_n only_o he_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o truth_n as_o i_o note_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o his_o four_o book_n 43_o chapter_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o chapter_n but_o irenaeus_n no_o where_n prescribe_v that_o his_o example_n of_o urge_v heretic_n to_o see_v their_o folly_n by_o succession_n for_o a_o perpetual_a rule_n to_o follow_v neither_o therein_o do_v he_o prophecy_n that_o for_o 1000_o year_n after_o &_o further_o those_o successive_a line_n of_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o will_v continue_v so_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o safe_o always_o they_o may_v be_v join_v unto_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o be_v prophesy_v concern_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o revel_v 17._o and_o that_o paul_n tell_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o that_o after_o his_o departure_n there_o will_v arise_v up_o even_o among_o themselves_o grievous_a wolf_n not_o spare_v the_o flock_n which_o must_v needs_o import_v that_o howsoever_o in_o his_o time_n he_o think_v sometime_o of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o yet_o it_o be_v far_o from_o his_o meaning_n to_o prophecy_n that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o you_o reason_v therefore_o in_o this_o point_n as_o one_o that_o to_o prove_v the_o stew_n at_o rome_n now_o to_o be_v pure_a virgin_n shall_v allege_v for_o proof_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v so_o when_o they_o be_v young_a child_n for_o even_o like_a difference_n and_o odds_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o and_o her_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o that_o that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n &_o time_n that_o you_o and_o the_o author_n that_o you_o allege_v speak_v of_o for_o whereas_o unto_o these_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n stand_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n since_o not_o only_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o who_o you_o hold_v be_v free_a &_o further_a of_o of_o all_o other_o from_o err_v as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o most_o plain_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o also_o all_o your_o romish_a doctrine_n which_o we_o now_o count_v &_o call_v papistical_a be_v divise_v &_o find_v out_o since_o those_o time_n and_o be_v also_o not_o only_o beside_o but_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n then_o teach_v &_o receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o pastor_n as_o ere_o i_o have_v do_v with_o you_o i_o hope_v at_o least_o in_o great_a part_n sufficient_o to_o prove_v it_o shall_v seem_v therefore_o that_o either_o you_o in_o thus_o reason_v be_v very_o childish_a yourself_o or_o else_o you_o think_v you_o have_v to_o deal_v but_o with_o babe_n and_o fool_n in_o that_o because_o irenaeus_n that_o flourish_v within_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v can_v and_o do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n join_v with_o succession_n of_o truth_n therefore_o you_o may_v that_o live_v 1500._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o more_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o succession_n of_o truth_n be_v unseparable_a from_o personal_a succession_n &_o that_o ever_o since_o and_o now_o also_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o personal_a succession_n you_o brag_v of_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v who_o name_n he_o recite_v whereof_o neither_o shall_v either_o you_o or_o any_o of_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n stand_v fie_o therefore_o for_o shame_n that_o you_o
and_o not_o to_o perfect_v it_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o church_n without_o a_o perfect_a touchstone_n to_o try_v all_o doctrine_n by_o and_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v either_o because_o he_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o perfect_v it_o whereof_o the_o one_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o infinite_a knowledge_n the_o other_o of_o the_o perfection_n of_o love_n and_o faithfulness_n towards_o the_o churchy_n therefore_o most_o certain_o in_o the_o write_v word_n there_o be_v leave_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a direction_n for_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o those_o unwriten_a tradition_n that_o some_o strive_v for_o be_v superfluous_a thus_o you_o have_v your_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n the_o vi_o chapter_n saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n all_o epistle_n you_o shall_v say_v 165._o f_o r_o there_n be_v but_o 204._o epistle_n in_o all_o 365._o about_o the_o like_a matter_n do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n by_o order_n which_o have_v be_v from_o s._n peter_n time_n until_o anastasius_n which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o by_o his_o continual_a succession_n he_o do_v prove_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o same_o argument_n we_o disprove_v popery_n because_o none_o of_o they_o that_o he_o reckon_v up_o there_o be_v of_o the_o romish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v heretical_a because_o that_o none_o of_o those_o pope_n which_o he_o do_v recite_v nor_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v receive_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o may_v not_o we_o say_v the_o like_a by_o the_o caluiniste_n the_o no_o not_o by_o they_o true_o who_o you_o call_v caluiniste_n caluinist_n and_o other_o heretic_n the_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o epistle_n that_o these_o that_o it_o seem_v you_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n for_o augustine_n write_v against_o a_o epistle_n so_o call_v he_o call_v not_o his_o so_o the_o epithet_n roman_n you_o add_v &_o the_o word_n all_o and_o continual_a for_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o succession_n to_o his_o time_n and_o yet_o there_o he_o say_v that_o o●●●e_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o these_o he_o do_v call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o do_v write_v the_o reason_n that_o do_v keep_v he_o under_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n and_o among_o other_o he_o do_v allege_v the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o nation_n &_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n one_o bishop_n this_o show_v your_o great_a ignorance_n or_o negligence_n for_o of_o th●●_n argument_n augustine_n write_v two_o book_n and_o in_o every_o book_n many_o chapter_n there_o be_v but_o this_o be_v common_a with_o you_o the_o more_o to_o trouble_v your_o reader_n to_o send_v he_o to_o whole_a book_n and_o beside_o sometime_o to_o set_v down_o your_o quotation_n as_o though_o the_o author_n have_v write_v but_o one_o when_o he_o write_v mo_z of_o that_o argument_n or_o as_o though_o he_o have_v write_v more_o when_o he_o have_v write_v but_o one_o and_o in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o make_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n he_o do_v name_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o most_o certain_a to_o answer_v to_o that_o that_o we_o say_v before_o of_o s._n 1._o s._n ephes_n 1._o paul_n 4._o paul_n you_o write_v ephes_n 1._o for_o ephes_n 4._o i_o mean_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o be_v waver_v and_o doubtful_a in_o our_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v firm_a and_o stable_a the_o which_o stableness_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n not_o bishop_n it_o continue_v so_o to_o augustine_n time_n that_o be_v three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n so_o ergo_fw-la so_fw-mi a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o it_o shall_v so_o continue_v the_o argument_n follow_v not_o the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v continue_v through_o the_o certain_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n until_o our_o day_n the_o vi_o chapter_n in_o this_o 6._o chapter_n you_o cite_v three_o place_n though_o some_o of_o they_o wrong_v quote_v out_o of_o augustine_n whereby_o indeed_o it_o appear_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n do_v object_n succession_n even_o so_o do_v he_o to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o teach_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o you_o concern_v irenaeus_n so_o do_v i_o concern_v he_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o augustine_n live_v &_o write_v within_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n unto_o who_o time_n the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o succession_n he_o produce_v have_v continue_v at_o least_o sound_v in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o which_o you_o &_o your_o predecessor_n fall_v away_o long_o ago_o &_o therefore_o that_o which_o he_o may_v herein_o safe_o and_o to_o good_a purpose_n do_v you_o can_v do_v without_o peril_n &_o to_o a_o ill_a end_n again_o you_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n be_v not_o so_o neither_o be_v he_o in_o thus_o do_v a_o prophet_n to_o show_v that_o to_o the_o world_n end_n it_o will_v be_v safe_a thus_o to_o do_v and_o last_o i_o will_v have_v both_o you_o and_o your_o reader_n to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a personal_a succession_n that_o augustine_n here_o make_v such_o reckon_n of_o but_o that_o when_o it_o be_v join_v also_o with_o succession_n of_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o time_n with_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v and_o be_v not_o now_o with_o you_o and_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n you_o brag_v so_o much_o which_o three_o thing_n consider_v whatsoever_o thing_n further_a by_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n or_o epiphanius_n which_o you_o may_v have_v as_o well_o allege_v as_o irenaeus_n or_o augustine_n be_v answer_v for_o they_o all_o of_o they_o live_v within_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o as_o yet_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v in_o good_a term_n in_o comparison_n that_o you_o do_v and_o they_o all_o speak_v of_o succession_n of_o person_n succeed_v also_o one_o another_o in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n and_o they_o speak_v but_o for_o their_o own_o time_n they_o prophesy_v not_o that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o and_o yet_o thus_o it_o be_v your_o fashion_n to_o beguile_v the_o simple_a that_o whatsoever_o you_o read_v 1000_o year_n ago_o speak_v in_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o then_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o catholic_a faith_n that_o you_o will_v bear_v they_o in_o hand_n be_v speak_v of_o your_o romish_a church_n and_o religion_n now_o when_o as_o you_o compare_v with_o those_o time_n have_v no_o similitude_n with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n then_o in_o a_o great_a number_n of_o weighty_a point_n but_o for_o the_o better_a satisfy_n of_o the_o reader_n indeed_o s._n august_n what_o account_n soever_o either_o in_o these_o place_n here_o recite_v by_o you_o or_o else_o where_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v of_o personal_a succession_n or_o of_o any_o such_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n make_v more_o account_n of_o sole_a truth_n teach_v only_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n then_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o for_o even_o in_o in_o his_o 165._o epistle_n which_o be_v the_o epistle_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v which_o you_o mean_v though_o you_o quote_v the_o 365._o which_o be_v more_o by_o a_o hundred_o &_o one_o then_o there_o be_v in_o all_o after_o he_o say_v we_o presume_v not_o so_o much_o of_o these_o as_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o second_o place_n by_o you_o here_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o which_o ignorant_o you_o say_v he_o call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la whereas_o he_o call_v none_o of_o his_o epistle_n so_o but_o write_v against_o a_o epistle_n of_o the_o manichee_n which_o they_o so_o call_v one_o book_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n whereof_o after_o he_o have_v reckon_v up_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v hold_v he_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o may_v likewise_o hold_v any_o believer_n therein_o though_o truth_n as_o yet_o do_v not_o most_o manifest_o show_v herself_o he_o add_v by_o &_o by_o but_z with_o you_o speak_v to_o the_o manichee_n sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_a promise_n of_o truth_n ring_v which_o true_o if_o it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v on_o your_o side_n so_o manifest_a that_o it_o can_v be_v call_v into_o doubt_n praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o
catholicâ_fw-la teneor_fw-la that_o be_v be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n whereby_o otherwise_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o three_o place_n likewise_o which_o you_o allege_v here_o out_o of_o augustine_n as_o you_o have_v quote_v it_o serve_v only_o to_o bewray_v either_o your_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o negligence_n for_o i_o find_v he_o write_v 2._o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o none_o in_o all_o his_o tome_n can_v i_o find_v father_v upon_o he_o write_v as_o you_o say_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n and_o if_o you_o mean_v the_o former_a there_o be_v two_o book_n of_o that_o title_n and_o every_o one_o consist_v of_o many_o chapter_n why_o speak_v you_o thereof_o as_o though_o he_o have_v write_v but_o one_o and_o name_v not_o the_o chapter_n when_o you_o tell_v we_o where_o to_o find_v the_o place_n you_o shall_v be_v more_o particular_o answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o see_v in_o augustine_n judgement_n in_o the_o two_o other_o place_n that_o the_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o motive_n to_o keep_v a_o man_n in_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n contrary_n whereunto_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o neither_o teach_v where_o you_o mean_v nor_o any_o where_o else_o you_o shall_v therefore_o in_o his_o opinion_n far_o better_o bestow_v your_o time_n than_o you_o do_v if_o you_o will_v bestow_v it_o in_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o &_o your_o church_n be_v stable_n in_o this_o truth_n especial_o see_v truth_n itself_o even_o here_o have_v enforce_v you_o to_o confess_v that_o that_o stableness_n be_v attein_v unto_o by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o add_v that_o these_o scripture_n they_o must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n if_o by_o the_o church_n you_o do_v understande_v as_o you_o shall_v the_o true_a and_o pure_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o her_o tradition_n and_o bishop_n such_o as_o be_v sound_a that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v true_o justifiable_a by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n &_o augustine_n with_o other_o of_o those_o and_o former_a time_n be_v wont_v to_o understand_v they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o when_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o heretic_n they_o do_v appeal_v to_o they_o then_o we_o will_v most_o willing_o join_v with_o you_o that_o issue_n by_o the_o scripture_n so_o understand_v to_o try_v whether_o you_o or_o we_o have_v attain_v to_o the_o stableness_n of_o truth_n but_o understand_v thereby_o as_o you_o do_v your_o romish_a church_n for_o these_o last_o 500_o or_o 600._o year_n &_o her_o tradition_n &_o bishop_n we_o say_v and_o sure_a we_o be_v we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o that_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o they_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ready_a way_n to_o misunderstand_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o to_o have_v a_o mutable_a and_o flexible_a sense_n now_o one_o way_n now_o another_o then_o to_o make_v they_o they_o be_v so_o contrary_a as_o they_o be_v to_o the_o ancient_a &_o sound_a tradition_n of_o christ_n church_n which_o always_o be_v consonant_a if_o not_o the_o very_a same_o to_z that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o word_n write_v &_o the_o bishop_n you_o mean_v be_v likewise_o so_o different_a from_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o often_o also_o so_o vary_v among_o themselves_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o interpret_n of_o they_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o right_a understanding_n of_o they_o final_o if_o you_o have_v any_o forehead_n or_o conscience_n you_o will_v be_v ashamed_a so_o to_o abuse_v your_o poor_a simple_a reader_n as_o you_o do_v in_o go_v about_o to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o because_o augustine_n can_v or_o do_v say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v continue_v in_o it_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n through_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n to_z his_o that_o therefore_o he_o say_v it_o have_v so_o to_o we_o there_o be_v above_o 1000_o year_n difference_n the_o vii_o chapter_n you_o do_v study_v as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v to_o reject_v our_o succession_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n esteem_v cause_n succession_n of_o person_n without_o succession_n also_o in_o truth_n never_o be_v esteem_v know_v that_o this_o only_a do_v suffice_v to_o overthrow_v all_o the_o heresy_n of_o those_o new_a reform_a gospeler_n caluin_n as_o the_o most_o apparent_a do_v seek_v to_o prove_v that_o our_o reason_n be_v of_o no_o force_n because_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v have_v ever_o succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v they_o as_o catholic_n but_o if_o the_o reader_n do_v well_o note_v that_o that_o we_o have_v already_o say_v he_o shall_v find_v the_o answer_n unto_o this_o objection_n i_o mean_v because_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v not_o have_v succession_n shame_n succession_n hold_v you_o to_o this_o &_o you_o may_v give_v over_o your_o brag_n of_o succession_n for_o shame_n and_o continuance_n of_o doctrine_n call_v unity_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o ought_v ever_o to_o be_v join_v to_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o show_v the_o true_a recognisaunce_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v study_n and_o read_v of_o those_o matter_n but_o that_o do_v know_v the_o unconstant_a faith_n of_o the_o greek_n as_o touch_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o which_o error_n they_o have_v abjure_v at_o the_o last_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v turn_v to_o it_o again_o beside_o diverse_a other_o light_a thing_n to_o speak_v moderate_o forefather_n moderate_o you_o have_v as_o many_o thing_n of_o importance_n and_o more_o too_o gainesai●d_v by_o your_o forefather_n which_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o their_o ancient_a father_n s._n john_n chrysostome_n s._n ciril_n s_o basil_n &_o athanatius_n nor_o yet_o by_o our_o adversary_n at_o this_o present_a time_n the_o which_o error_n i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o set_v forth_o in_o this_o book_n for_o my_o intent_n be_v but_o to_o speak_v of_o that_o that_o prick_v we_o at_o hand_n because_o of_o ill_a neighbourhood_n some_o do_v allege_v unto_o we_o the_o pastor_n the_o we_o never_o allege_v this_o alone_a but_o together_o with_o the_o false_a doctrine_n and_o unlawful_a vocation_n of_o your_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n negligence_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o their_o ill_a life_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o say_v that_o the_o mention_a succession_n can_v take_v place_n but_o this_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o force_n for_o although_o that_o the_o careless_a life_n of_o some_o bishop_n and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v be_v so_o great_a &_o so_o hurtful_a unto_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n i_o mean_v to_o the_o soul_n buy_v with_o it_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o priest_n that_o yet_o thus_o for_o the_o principal_a point_n you_o be_v glad_a to_o fly_v from_o your_o great_a prelate_n to_o your_o poor_a priest_n the_o church_n have_v not_o lose_v the_o succession_n &_o continuance_n of_o one_o doctrine_n as_o touch_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o those_o that_o be_v depute_v by_o the_o bishop_n prelate_n bishop_n indeed_o this_o kind_n of_o division_n be_v altogether_o practise_v in_o your_o romish_a church_n by_o your_o cardinal_n and_o great_a prelate_n if_o one_o shall_v see_v a_o prelate_n do_v nothing_o and_o his_o lieutenant_n do_v all_o which_o of_o those_o two_o will_v you_o take_v to_o be_v bishop_n they_o have_v both_o divide_v their_o charge_n the_o one_o receive_v the_o profit_n the_o other_o take_v all_o the_o pain_n if_o they_o be_v both_o content_n what_o loss_n do_v you_o feel_v he_o that_o have_v any_o interest_n let_v he_o value_v the_o damage_n and_o although_o that_o the_o negligence_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o excusable_a sin_n excusable_a and_o yet_o nothing_o more_o common_a will_z h_o you_o then_o wilful_a continuance_n yea_o by_o your_o pope_n good_a leave_n in_o this_o sin_n before_o god_n with_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o deputy_n nor_o his_o conscience_n clear_a yet_o this_o aught_o to_o suffice_v that_o though_o his_o fault_n be_v through_o negligence_n or_o through_o evil_a live_n you_o live_n true_a but_o such_o doctrine_n you_o shall_v never_o prove_v you_o yet_o that_o ought_v not_o to_o perturb_v the_o assurance_n of_o our_o doctrine_n the_o which_o we_o have_v teach_v we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v by_o the_o true_a doctor_n that_o have_v be_v
print_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o he_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o 1_o a_o galat._n 1_o anathema_n or_o a_o excommunicate_a person_n yea_o although_o it_o be_v a_o angel_n of_o heaven_n the_o which_o do_v persuade_v we_o not_o to_o receive_v your_o scripture_n your_o we_o be_v new_a to_o you_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o that_o time_n that_o understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n new_a doctrine_n or_o gospel_n but_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o under_o the_o governaunce_n of_o our_o old_a pastor_n and_o bishop_n without_o have_v any_o respect_n to_o their_o evil_n or_o good_a life_n for_o as_o touch_v our_o faith_n and_o salvation_n that_o do_v import_v nothing_o convert_v nothing_o this_o be_v hardly_o &_o bold_o say_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o you_o know_v some_o take_v occasion_n the_o rather_o thereby_o to_o have_v they_o and_o so_o to_o be_v convert_v the_o good_a and_o holy_a life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v profit_v nothing_o neither_o to_o the_o obstinate_a jew_n nor_o to_o the_o unbelieve_a gentile_n punishment_n gentile_n open_v confession_n will_v have_v open_a punishment_n nor_o in_o the_o like_a case_n the_o deprave_a life_n of_o many_o evil_a bishop_n that_o have_v be_v at_o rome_n and_o in_o other_o place_n have_v not_o shut_v the_o door_n of_o heaven_n against_o those_o that_o be_v true_a catholic_n and_o lead_v particular_a life_n the_o which_o be_v two_o principal_a point_n that_o do_v quiet_a our_o conscience_n they_o conscience_n the_o first_o be_v talk_n and_o the_o la●ter_a i●_n little_o be_v see_v how_o many_o of_o you_o have_v learned_a to_o be_v l●●d●_n of_o they_o i_o mean_v the_o one_o that_o we_o believe_v that_o that_o our_o pastor_n and_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v believe_v these_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o the_o other_o that_o their_o evil_a life_n can_v hurt_v us._n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v every_o man_n shall_v bear_v his_o own_o bundle_n the_o ix_o chapter_n now_o persuade_v yourself_o that_o you_o have_v yield_v we_o a_o sufficient_a account_n of_o your_o ministry_n when_o as_o only_o you_o have_v countenance_v it_o with_o a_o show_n of_o personal_a succession_n and_o a_o bare_a brag_n without_o any_o proof_n at_o all_o of_o succession_n also_o in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n as_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v you_o call_v we_o to_o a_o reckon_n for_o we_o and_o will_v we_o to_o show_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o or_o else_o to_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o say_v it_o come_v from_o his_o adversary_n we_o answer_v you_o that_o our_o call_n be_v of_o god_n first_o because_o orderly_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o we_o live_v we_o be_v by_o they_o that_o be_v depute_v by_o the_o church_n for_o that_o business_n try_v and_o examine_v and_o then_o with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o special_a prayer_n unto_o god_n fit_n for_o that_o purpose_n admit_v and_o ordain_v minister_n of_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n second_o because_o our_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n itself_o be_v the_o same_o that_o christ_n give_v unto_o his_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n who_o office_n and_o property_n be_v set_v down_o and_o describe_v act_n 20._o 2._o corinthian_n 4._o 1._o timothy_n 3._o titus_n 1._o 1._o peter_n 5._o and_o three_o because_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o write_v word_n that_o we_o feed_v god_n people_n commit_v unto_o we_o with_o that_o only_a food_n which_o god_n have_v allow_v for_o his_o child_n and_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n last_o god_n himself_o have_v seal_v &_o ratify_v our_o ministry_n to_o be_v of_o he_o in_o the_o effectual_a vocation_n &_o conversion_n of_o many_o thereby_o let_v we_o now_o therefore_o hear_v what_o you_o can_v say_v either_o to_o weaken_v this_o our_o assertion_n that_o our_o call_n be_v of_o god_n or_o any_o of_o these_o reason_n that_o we_o use_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o first_o in_o tertullians_n word_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la you_o bid_v we_o show_v the_o beginning_n of_o our_o church_n and_o reckon_v up_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n down_o to_o we_o from_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n you_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o same_o tertullian_n in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v you_o add_v be_v it_o that_o heretic_n devise_v thus_o to_o do_v for_o what_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o be_v once_o fall_v into_o blasphemy_n but_o though_o they_o shall_v devise_v so_o say_v he_o they_o shall_v gain_v nothing_o for_o their_o doctrine_n compare_v with_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n by_o the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n thereof_o will_v pronounce_v that_o their_o church_n have_v neither_o apostle_n nor_o apostolic_a man_n for_o the_o author_n thereof_o whereof_o when_o he_o have_v give_v a_o reason_n he_o add_v that_o those_o church_n which_o can_v show_v any_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n to_o be_v the_o founder_n thereof_o in_o that_o they_o be_v found_v long_o after_o as_o many_o be_v yet_o in_o eâdem_fw-la fide_fw-la conspirantes_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la de_fw-la putantur_fw-la pro_fw-la consanguinitate_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la that_o be_v they_o be_v no_o less_o to_o be_v repute_v for_o apostolic_a agree_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n even_o for_o the_o affinity_n thereof_o you_o think_v it_o good_a to_o stop_v before_o you_o come_v to_o these_o word_n for_o these_o word_n indeed_o take_v away_o all_o the_o force_n of_o the_o objection_n ground_v upon_o the_o former_a in_o that_o hereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o howsoever_o tertullian_n in_o his_o time_n can_v show_v the_o original_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o deduce_v it_o and_o the_o doctrine_n therein_o profess_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o his_o time_n yet_o he_o think_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o heretic_n to_o make_v show_n of_o the_o like_a succession_n of_o person_n but_o second_o and_o especial_o because_o thereby_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v apostolic_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o it_o always_o to_o be_v able_a to_o deduce_v such_o a_o line_n of_o personal_a succession_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o unless_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o scripture_n whereby_o we_o most_o cartain_o may_v know_v what_o their_o doctrine_n be_v let_v not_o our_o church_n be_v account_v apostolic_a but_o if_o this_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v which_o we_o doubt_v not_o of_o and_o you_o compare_v and_o confer_v with_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n therein_o express_v shall_v prove_v both_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a then_o for_o all_o your_o fiction_n of_o succession_n we_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o tertullians_n word_n that_o so_o your_o church_n shall_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v found_v neither_o by_o apostle_n nor_o apostolic_a man_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v not_o contrary_n among_o themselves_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o apostolic_a man_n say_v he_o unless_o it_o be_v they_o that_o depart_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o shall_v prove_v themselves_o though_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o deduce_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o their_o affinity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v apostolic_a and_o so_o to_o have_v their_o original_n and_o beginning_n from_o zion_n and_o so_o also_o in_o the_o end_n it_o will_v fall_v out_o that_o tertullian_n speak_v rather_o against_o such_o as_o you_o be_v them_z against_o us._n and_o thus_o you_o see_v tertullian_n have_v sufficient_o answer_v himself_o and_o also_o have_v give_v we_o weapon_n against_o you_o &_o to_o defend_v ourselves_o withal_o you_o gain_v even_o as_o little_a by_o your_o similitude_n take_v from_o tenant_n who_o to_o prove_v their_o title_n good_a must_v show_v their_o landlord_n how_o by_o succession_n they_o come_v to_o their_o land_n for_o if_o all_o landlord_n shall_v thrust_v all_o their_o tenant_n from_o their_o possession_n which_o be_v not_o able_a to_o deduce_v the_o descent_n of_o their_o teniment_n from_o one_o to_o one_o even_o from_o the_o first_o that_o hold_v it_o &_o purchase_v it_o the_o 10_o tenant_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o long_o quiet_o enjoy_v his_o own_o yet_o you_o for_o your_o part_n if_o your_o bare_a brag_n be_v a_o proof_n be_v such_o tenant_n to_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o catholic_a truth_n that_o you_o have_v not_o only_o prove_v your_o title_n thereunto_o to_o be_v good_a by_o
by_o bertran_n and_o other_o before_o name_v and_o their_o follower_n as_o we_o have_v make_v it_o most_o evident_a in_o many_o book_n write_v to_o that_o purpose_n &_o namely_o of_o late_a in_o a_o great_a book_n call_v orthodoxus_n consensus_fw-la the_o true_a catholic_a consent_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o of_o all_o the_o controversy_n thereabouts_o print_v at_o tygure_n 1578_o which_o book_n all_o the_o swarm_v of_o you_o will_v never_o be_v sound_o able_a to_o answer_v &_o confute_v as_o long_o as_o you_o live_v and_o therefore_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v needle_n wherein_o you_o suppose_v that_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o we_o there_o be_v none_o that_o we_o can_v produce_v of_o our_o judgement_n or_o otherwise_o against_o you_o but_o you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o we_o cut_v of_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v between_o they_o &_o we_o because_o caluin_n have_v write_v handle_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o do_v find_v that_o they_o of_o old_a time_n have_v change_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o administration_n thereof_o otherwise_o they_o christ_n institution_n will_v bear_v etc._n etc._n whereupon_o your_o conclusion_n follow_v not_o for_o diverse_a cause_n for_o a_o argument_n from_o one_o to_o all_o hold_v not_o as_o caluin_n have_v do_v so_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v all_o out_o opinion_n &_o we_o all_o do_v so_o for_o though_o we_o account_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o rare_a &_o singular_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o do_v and_o say_v whatsoever_o he_o do_v and_o say_v for_o we_o know_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n subject_n to_o error_n and_o infirmity_n for_o all_o his_o gift_n neither_o will_v you_o be_v content_v that_o such_o a_o argument_n shall_v hold_v always_o draw_v from_o any_o one_o of_o your_o great_a &_o most_o famous_a learned_a writer_n to_o press_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o a_o second_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v that_o there_o be_v more_o in_o your_o conclusion_n then_o be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n give_v you_o by_o he_o for_o you_o will_v conclude_v for_o those_o be_v your_o word_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v caluin_n that_o we_o condenne_n &_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o christian_n that_o have_v be_v &_o be_v betwixt_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o we_o whereas_o caluin_n speak_v not_o of_o all_o but_o of_o some_o of_o old_a time_n the_o 3_o reason_n caluin_n himself_o give_v you_o in_o the_o even_o in_o the_o word_n set_v down_o by_o you_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o though_o in_o they_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o note_v some_o aberration_n from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o christ_n institution_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o church_n nor_o condenne_v they_o what_o be_v you_o such_o a_o cutter_n that_o you_o straight_o cut_v of_o all_o those_o from_o communion_n with_o you_o in_o who_o you_o can_v just_o find_v any_o fault_n or_o error_n in_o opinion_n or_o practice_v of_o life_n sure_o then_o you_o must_v cut_v of_o most_o of_o your_o best_a friend_n that_o which_o we_o can_v fond_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o brethren_n either_o ancient_a or_o of_o late_a time_n we_o may_v safe_o note_v tell_v they_o of_o and_o labour_n to_o reform_v &_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o join_v together_o with_o we_o in_o one_o god_n faith_n and_o baptism_n otherwise_o we_o can_v and_o aught_o to_o hold_v peace_n &_o christian_a communion_n with_o they_o or_o else_o where_o can_v there_o at_o any_o time_n be_v any_o true_a concord_n or_o peace_n keep_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o difference_n of_o opinion_n &_o usage_n there_o have_v always_o yet_o be_v and_o will_v be_v betwixt_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o and_o betwixt_o some_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o other_o you_o need_v not_o therefore_o i_o warrant_v you_o one_o whit_n have_v be_v afraid_a that_o caluin_n &_o his_o fellow_n be_v so_o scrupulous_a that_o they_o will_v not_o join_v in_o fellow_n ship_n with_o some_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o and_o yet_o the_o let_v not_o but_z that_o he_o shall_v counsel_v his_o reader_n to_o prefer_v christ_n own_o simple_a institution_n before_o the_o usage_n of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o differ_v from_o it_o the_o xi_o chapter_n you_o do●_n very_o well_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v compare_v many_o time_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o a_o natural_a body_n see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n unto_o who_o the_o body_n be_v join_v by_o joint_n bone_n &_o sinew_n if_o one_o shall_v then_o demand_n of_o you_o how_o the_o foot_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v i_o by_o the_o leg_n which_o be_v next_o unto_o the_o foot_n and_o if_o i_o ask_v you_o how_o the_o leg_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v by_o the_o joint_n and_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o back_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o member_n to_o member_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o accord_n 10._o accord_n 1_o cor._n 10._o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o we_o be_v the_o low_a most_o part_n of_o the_o body_n so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o foot_n or_o the_o leg_n then_o my_o master_n you_o that_o have_v make_v so_o f●ne_a a●_n anatomy_n of_o the_o mass_n at_o my_o request_n make_v another_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o your_o congregation_n laughter_n congregation_n you_o be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a man_n be_v like_o that_o can_v thus_o play_v yourself_o a_o fit_a of_o mirth_n and_o when_o you_o have_v do_v dance_n after_o your_o own_o pipe_n &_o it_o seem_v you_o think_v that_o the_o sport_n than_o will_v be_v so_o pleasant_a that_o no_o beholder_n can_v forbear_v laughter_n if_o you_o shall_v see_v such_o another_o as_o apelles_n that_o will_v paint_v a_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v draw_v his_o head_n and_o without_o paint_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o body_n he_o have_v set_v his_o foot_n under_o his_o ear_n what_o will_v you_o sa●●_n to_o such_o a_o table_n spectatum_fw-la admissi_fw-la risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la amici_fw-la will_v you_o not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a painter_n or_o else_o a_o great_a jester_n even_o so_o do_v you_o deserve_v that_o one_o shall_v laugh_v at_o your_o ministry_n fancy_n ministry_n this_o be_v untrue_a and_o a_o gross_a slander_n for_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o ever_o since_o christ_n to_o our_o day_n there_o have_v be_v both_o shepherd_n and_o sheep_n join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o therefore_o you_o laugh_v at_o your_o own_o shadow_n and_o vain_a fancy_n for_o you_o will_v join_v your_o church_n if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o call_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n without_o set_v forth_o any_o member_n between_o they_o you_o take_v but_o scant_a measure_n when_o you_o will_v cut_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o our_o day_n they_o be_v the_o member_n that_o follow_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o new_a religion_n or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a presumption_n to_o fly_v without_o wing_n or_o to_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o again_o that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o great_a shepherd_n that_o i_o mention_v before_o who_o do_v say_v unto_o we_o that_o if_o we_o will_v not_o miss_v the_o way_n of_o the_o catholic_n we_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o flock_n of_o those_o sheep_n that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v reason_n reckon_v but_o th●s_n in_o truth_n you_o can_v do_v therefore_o you_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o your_o own_o reason_n by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v show_v the_o catholic_a church_n do_v and_o have_v ever_o do_v the_o xi_o chapter_n as_o though_o you_o have_v most_o substantial_o prove_v by_o caluins_n word_n that_o we_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o urge_v the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o body_n whereunto_o usual_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v compare_v whereupon_o you_o gather_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o orderly_a connexion_n and_o situation_n of_o member_n in_o a_o body_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o therefore_o our_o church_n must_v
christ_n do_v say_v he_o that_o have_v send_v i_o be_v with_o i_o and_o he_o have_v not_o leave_v i_o alone_o and_o therefore_o theodorus_n &_o his_o fellow_n do_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o union_n between_o the_o divinity_n &_o humanity_n of_o our_o saviour_n than_o there_o be_v between_o god_n &_o us._n of_o the_o which_o 5._o which_o c_o 1._o cor._n 5._o s._n paul_n do_v speak_v where_o he_o say_v he_o that_o be_v join_v to_o god_n 6._o god_n well_o quote_v you_o will_v have_v say_v 6._o be_v make_v one_o spirit_n with_o he_o the_o xxvi_o chapter_n it_o do_v suffice_v that_o one_o may_v see_v by_o these_o fellow_n how_o soon_o one_o that_o be_v ill_o dispose_v may_v allege_v scripture_n in_o corrupt_a sense_n to_o maintain_v such_o heresy_n as_o these_o the_o which_o i_o will_v not_o stay_v to_o confute_v for_o thanks_n be_v to_o god_n they_o do_v not_o reign_v now_o for_o they_o have_v perish_v and_o their_o author_n dream_n author_n this_o be_v but_o a_o blind_a prophets_n dream_n as_o you_o shall_v and_o your_o follower_n if_o you_o do_v not_o repent_v in_o time_n and_o beside_o this_o our_o doctor_n have_v full_o answer_v much_o answer_v it_o be_v well_o yet_o that_o you_o will_v confess_v thus_o much_o by_o text_n of_o scripture_n these_o old_a heresy_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o all_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o confute_v they_o not_o only_o with_o pithy_a reason_n but_o with_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o diverse_a general_a counsel_n and_o if_o i_o have_v note_v here_o some_o part_n both_o of_o their_o author_n and_o of_o they_o to_o show_v how_o they_o do_v seek_v to_o confirm_v their_o damnable_a opinion_n i_o do_v it_o only_o to_o warn_v the_o simple_a people_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o soon_o give_v ear_n to_o false_a pastor_n which_o have_v nothing_o in_o their_o mouth_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n cover_v the_o cup_n of_o their_o poison_n with_o the_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n which_o they_o have_v take_v from_o the_o image_n of_o the_o eternal_a king_n to_o paint_v those_o subtle_a fox_n that_o will_v lead_v they_o all_o to_o damnation_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n i_o do_v desire_v those_o that_o be_v not_o much_o use_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n nor_o to_o hear_v how_o the_o church_n and_o the_o doctor_n do_v expound_v the_o hard_a place_n diligent_o place_n so_o do_v we_o but_o not_o to_o drive_v they_o from_o read_v they_o but_o to_o show_v they_o hat_z they_o must_v be_v read_v and_o search_v diligent_o to_o beware_v how_o they_o read_v they_o for_o fear_n of_o fall_v into_o error_n take_v only_o the_o letter_n which_o many_o time_n have_v a_o contrary_a sense_n to_o that_o that_o be_v outward_o write_v for_o if_o so_o many_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n &_o excellent_a understanding_n have_v find_v such_o great_a rock_n in_o this_o rough_a sea_n which_o have_v many_o time_n overthrow_v their_o ship_n how_o dangerous_a then_o must_v it_o needs_o be_v unto_o those_o that_o will_v take_v it_o in_o hand_n so_o doubtful_a a_o navigation_n have_v little_a skill_n or_o none_o at_o all_o but_o as_o for_o you_o my_o master_n of_o the_o contrary_a side_n you_o can_v sail_v with_o all_o tide_n &_o all_o wind_n give_v the_o governance_n of_o the_o ship_n or_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o stern_a without_o consideration_n slander_n consideration_n this_o be_v a_o mere_a slander_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o people_n we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n in_o france_n i_o will_v not_o say_v in_o england_n many_o that_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o sooth_n what_o be_v they_o marry_o pedlar_n cobbler_n tanner_n bankrupt_n runnegate_n &_o such_o other_o which_o have_v no_o other_o live_n papist_n live_n here_o the_o author_n bewray_v himself_o rather_o to_o have_v be_v a_o english_a man_n than_o a_o french_a for_o when_o this_o shall_v be_v wr●ten_v there_o be_v no_o lord_n bishop_n in_o france_n to_o make_v such_o but_o papist_n sue_v to_o my_o lord_n bishop_n and_o he_o make_v they_o minister_n be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o but_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n teacher_n spirit_n all_o this_o be_v but_o slanderous_a rail_n &_o lie_v for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v or_o think_v thus_o but_o cry_v upon_o bishop_n that_o they_o admit_v no_o suc_n unfit_a me●_n and_o we_o call_v upon_o such_o rather_o humble_o to_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o place_n of_o earner_n then_o to_o presume_v without_o sufficient_a knowledge_n to_o be_v teacher_n for_o assoon_o as_o they_o can_v say_v the_o lord_n and_o rail_v upon_o the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n and_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o have_v be_v in_o time_n past_a oh_o these_o be_v great_a doctor_n no_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o they_o be_v hard_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v man_n &_o the_o general_a counsel_n do_v err_v i_o know_v that_o you_o do_v maintain_v your_o opinion_n with_o the_o say_n of_o 8._o of_o e_o john_n 8._o christ_n allege_v it_o as_o other_o heretic_n have_v do_v the_o which_o be_v that_o the_o heavenly_a father_n have_v hide_v these_o high_a and_o profound_a thing_n from_o the_o great_a clerk_n and_o have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o the_o meek_a and_o humble_a this_o be_v true_a but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o the_o humble_a and_o meek_a of_o spirit_n and_o not_o to_o those_o which_o trust_v so_o much_o to_o their_o own_o wit_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o arrogant_a ignorance_n that_o they_o think_v to_o know_v more_o in_o three_o day_n read_v than_o the_o doctor_n can_v in_o fifty_o year_n study_n fame_a themselves_o to_o be_v like_o the_o apostle_n as_o if_o that_o god_n govern_v by_o their_o appetite_n do_v send_v every_o month_n the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n say_v pentecost_n mat._n 11._o you_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o xxii_o xxiii_o xxiiii_o xxv_o &_o xxvi_o chapter_n neither_o our_o own_o doctor_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o yet_o you_o have_v say_v for_o all_o your_o great_a brag_n have_v any_o force_n either_o to_o disprove_v that_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o vocation_n or_o to_o condemn_v our_o religion_n neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o we_o stand_v so_o much_o upon_o our_o extraordinary_a call_n as_o you_o will_v insinuate_v to_o your_o reader_n for_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o if_o you_o take_v ordinary_a call_n in_o your_o own_o sense_n if_o there_o be_v any_o good_a at_o all_o in_o that_o wickliff_n john_n hus_n luther_n bucer_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o have_v be_v the_o first_o &_o foremost_a in_o these_o late_a day_n in_o detect_v the_o error_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o in_o renew_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v that_o kind_n of_o call_v and_o as_o for_o the_o rest_n since_o they_o have_v have_v a_o better_a ordinary_n call_v they_o that_o in_o that_o it_o have_v be_v more_o agree_v to_o the_o order_n of_o call_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o primative_a church_n but_o in_o that_o to_o express_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o our_o extraordinary_a call_n you_o say_v that_o thereby_o you_o mean_v a_o call_n without_o commission_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n i_o perceive_v that_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o you_o charge_v many_o of_o our_o minister_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n extraordinary_o because_o howsoever_o otherwise_o they_o have_v before_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o any_o deal_n in_o the_o ministry_n the_o ordinary_a call_v allow_v of_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o christ_n where_o they_o be_v to_o exercise_v the_o same_o they_o take_v not_o first_o any_o of_o your_o popish_a order_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o of_o your_o popish_a lord_n bishop_n after_o your_o popish_a manner_n in_o which_o sort_n i_o grant_v you_o many_o of_o our_o minister_n have_v a_o extraordinary_a call_n but_o then_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o again_o that_o their_o extraordinary_a call_n have_v a_o eye_n to_o that_o order_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v in_o this_o case_n unto_o the_o church_n be_v more_o ordinary_a than_o the_o ordinary_a calling_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o and_o therefore_o though_o their_o call_n of_o late_a day_n here_o among_o we_o have_v not_o be_v according_a to_o your_o order_n &_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o be_v choose_v by_o your_o pastor_n nor_o have_v imposition_n of_o hand_n of_o your_o lord_n bishop_n yet_o you_o can_v say_v true_o that_o any_o of_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o extraordinary_o that_o be_v as_o you_o expound_v it_o without_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n name_v the_o man_n time_n and_o place_n you_o can_v when_o and_o where_o any_o that_o be_v
to_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n be_v extant_a under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o deliberate_a answer_n to_o a_o rash_a offer_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v print_v by_o john_n charlewoode_n in_o london_n 1588._o they_o both_o have_v with_o their_o answer_n set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o offerer_n the_o travel_n of_o these_o two_o man_n have_v ease_v both_o i_o &_o this_o book_n of_o i_o of_o meddle_v any_o further_a than_o i_o have_v say_v with_o that_o challenger_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o since_o he_o have_v his_o first_o answer_n we_o never_o yet_o hear_v that_o he_o have_v either_o skill_n or_o will_n to_o reply_v i_o may_v well_o enough_o consider_v the_o largeness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o master_n crowleys_n answer_v thereunto_o have_v omit_v that_o which_o i_o further_o have_v say_v to_o answer_v his_o six_o sign_n not_o touch_v by_o doctor_n fulke_n but_o that_o what_o i_o have_v write_v thereabouts_o be_v write_v before_o i_o see_v master_n crowleys_n answer_v and_o that_o i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o let_v it_o stand_v that_o so_o betwixt_o we_o three_o the_o whole_a thus_o may_v be_v twice_o answer_v though_o it_o be_v master_n crowley_n who_o as_o i_o note_v before_o in_o the_o first_o leaf_n of_o his_o book_n make_v answer_n to_o this_o offer_n that_o give_v that_o judgement_n that_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o much_o apostasy_n of_o late_a here_o among_o we_o yet_o he_o as_o he_o there_o show_v will_v not_o bestow_v time_n in_o answer_v of_o it_o because_o suppose_v by_o the_o title_n it_o be_v write_v by_o a_o frenchman_n &_o therefore_o either_o in_o french_a or_o latin_a he_o think_v that_o either_o beza_n or_o some_o other_o french_a protestant_n have_v do_v it_o already_o sufficient_o this_o when_o i_o read_v first_o it_o cause_v i_o to_o be_v the_o slack_a both_o in_o finish_v and_o publish_v this_o answer_n of_o i_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o be_v now_o among_o we_o in_o english_a and_o therefore_o in_o his_o opinion_n have_v hurt_v so_o much_o and_o so_o many_o english_a person_n and_o i_o can_v never_o learn_v of_o any_o certainty_n that_o in_o any_o other_o language_n it_o have_v be_v direct_o answer_v by_o any_o i_o think_v it_o needful_a and_o the_o best_a way_n whether_o any_o such_o answer_n in_o any_o other_o tongue_n have_v be_v make_v unto_o it_o elsewhere_o or_o not_o to_o prevent_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v any_o further_a such_o danger_n among_o we_o by_o it_o to_o accompany_v such_o poison_n with_o his_o fit_a counterpoison_v that_o be_v such_o a_o english_a popish_a discourse_n with_o a_o english_a christian_n answer_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o howsoever_o by_o the_o title_n there_o be_v show_v that_o the_o author_n be_v a_o frenchman_n yet_o indeed_o i_o can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v so_o for_o his_o publisher_n in_o english_a take_v leisure_n as_o he_o have_v to_o trouble_v his_o reader_n with_o a_o long_a tedious_a and_o frivolous_a preface_n have_v not_o therein_o so_o much_o as_o secret_o once_o insinuate_v unto_o we_o in_o what_o language_n the_o author_n write_v it_o yea_o he_o have_v not_o once_o mention_v any_o translation_n of_o it_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o any_o other_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o together_o with_o sundry_a phrase_n and_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n make_v i_o rather_o think_v that_o some_o of_o our_o own_o fugitive_n english_a jesuit_n or_o seminary_a priest_n indeed_o have_v make_v it_o than_o any_o such_o archdeacon_n of_o tolosa_n in_o france_n as_o be_v pretend_v but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o much_o material_a and_o therefore_o i_o have_v not_o be_v herein_o curious_a for_o these_o my_o reason_n notwithstanding_o in_o all_o this_o my_o answer_n unto_o he_o i_o frame_v my_o speech_n as_o to_o the_o author_n who_o name_n it_o bear_v and_o howsoever_o i_o may_v doubt_v of_o his_o person_n and_o country_n of_o this_o i_o be_o certain_a whosoever_o he_o be_v french_z or_o english_a the_o son_n of_o that_o bondwoman_n ishmael_n be_v never_o cunning_a in_o persecute_v the_o son_n of_o the_o freewoman_n isaac_n with_o scoff_n &_o mock_n than_o the_o author_n thereof_o be_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n to_o do_v what_o may_v be_v do_v to_o vex_v and_o grieve_v us._n whosoever_o he_o be_v the_o right_a popish_a vain_a &_o spirit_n of_o writing_n he_o have_v for_o in_o so_o short_a a_o piece_n of_o work_n i_o be_o persuade_v by_o that_o you_o have_v view_v he_o over_o together_o with_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o your_o lordship_n will_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o never_o any_o of_o that_o faction_n go_v beyond_o he_o in_o shameful_a beg_n always_o the_o thing_n most_o in_o question_n in_o subtle_a slip_n from_o the_o matter_n undertake_v to_o prove_v into_o other_o more_o easy_a for_o he_o &_o not_o in_o question_n in_o false_a quote_v &_o abuse_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o allege_n or_o in_o barrenness_n of_o matter_n or_o method_n in_o such_o copy_n of_o swell_a brag_a and_o triumph_v word_n sure_o i_o be_o for_o my_o own_o part_n though_o i_o know_v these_o be_v the_o common_a ornament_n of_o popish_a writer_n that_o i_o never_o read_v any_o who_o book_n consist_v so_o whole_o of_o these_o as_o this_o of_o he_o but_o to_o leave_v he_o as_o he_o be_v whosoever_o he_o be_v and_o to_o return_v unto_o your_o lordship_n once_o again_o i_o dedicate_v and_o offer_v this_o my_o poor_a labour_n unto_o your_o honourable_a view_n &_o protection_n which_o i_o do_v not_o because_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o i_o have_v therein_o teach_v and_o defend_v stand_v need_n of_o the_o patronage_n of_o man_n for_o god_n the_o author_n thereof_o can_v and_o will_v defend_v and_o protect_v that_o though_o all_o the_o great_a man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v band_v themselves_o against_o it_o but_o for_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a other_o reason_n just_o i_o move_v thereunto_o one_o be_v which_o i_o have_v touch_v already_o that_o of_o right_a the_o dedication_n hereof_o appertain_v to_o you_o because_o i_o have_v never_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n but_o by_o your_o lordship_n motion_n &_o persuasion_n a_o other_o be_v that_o you_o since_o my_o come_n to_o the_o place_n where_o i_o be_o for_o these_o eleven_o year_n last_o pass_v have_v always_o be_v &_o yet_o be_v a_o most_o love_a &_o fatherly_a patron_n to_o my_o ministry_n i_o and_o i_o by_o which_o right_n though_o that_o former_a reason_n have_v not_o be_v your_o honour_n may_v worthy_o challenge_v not_o only_o in_o this_o but_o also_o in_o all_o other_o such_o poor_a fruit_n of_o i_o grow_v from_o i_o thus_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v under_o your_o lordship_n patronage_n great_a interest_n than_o this_o which_o i_o offer_v you_o now_o herein_o but_o if_o neither_o of_o these_o two_o reason_n have_v be_v yet_o you_o be_v the_o man_n you_o be_v that_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o far_o as_o you_o be_v know_v which_o be_v very_o far_o among_o the_o godly_a and_o true_o religious_a a_o man_n by_o birth_n honourable_a for_o martial_a prowess_n more_o and_o for_o gift_n of_o sound_n learning_n religion_n and_o virtue_n most_o of_o of_o all_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o esteem_v even_o that_o will_v have_v draw_v i_o though_o otherwise_o i_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a stranger_n unto_o you_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o have_v seek_v to_o have_v testify_v my_o dutiful_a and_o hearty_a good_a affection_n towards_o you_o for_o piety_n join_v with_o christian_a nobility_n have_v be_v the_o ancient_a cause_n why_o the_o godly_a learned_a in_o ancient_a time_n have_v dedicate_v their_o work_n to_o such_o as_o they_o have_v judge_v true_o qualify_v therewith_o doubtless_o thereby_o both_o the_o better_a to_o encourage_v they_o to_o who_o they_o dedicate_v their_o labour_n to_o proceed_v and_o go_v on_o in_o the_o good_a course_n they_o have_v begin_v and_o thereby_o to_o provoke_v other_o to_o imitate_v their_o good_a example_n that_o the_o like_a honourable_a opinion_n may_v by_o such_o also_o be_v conceive_v of_o they_o &_o likewise_o when_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v to_o their_o comfort_n testify_v public_o of_o they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n what_o else_o move_v ambrose_n to_o dedicate_v his_o book_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n what_o else_o cause_v lactantius_n to_o dedicate_v his_o divine_a institu●●ons_n to_o constantine_n or_o what_o else_o enduce_v the_o holy_a evangelist_n s._n luke_n to_o dedicate_v his_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o noble_a theophilus_n it_o be_v doubtless_o great_a honour_n unto_o these_o man_n in_o their_o ●imes_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n
word_n to_o trust_v they_o any_o more_o in_o their_o quote_v or_o cite_v of_o the_o father_n but_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o slip_n of_o he_o by_o chance_n &_o that_o he_o be_v not_o his_o craftes-master_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o deal_v he_o have_v play_v we_o the_o very_a like_o trick_n again_o with_o this_o same_o father_n pa._n 18._o &_o where_o he_o allege_v the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v irenaeus_n three_o book_n to_o justify_v their_o tradition_n not_o warrant_v by_o the_o write_a word_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_a chapter_n not_o five_o line_n before_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o he_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o euamgelist_n he_o say_v that_o they_o into_o that_o rich_a treasury_n most_o full_o have_v bring_v all_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o truth_n so_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v may_v from_o thence_o take_v the_o drink_n of_o life_n and_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n allege_v by_o he_o of_o follow_v of_o tradition_n it_o be_v speak_v only_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n to_o show_v what_o course_n have_v be_v best_a for_o the_o church_n when_o any_o question_n shall_v have_v arisen_a if_o they_o have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n for_o his_o word_n be_v these_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n must_v we_o not_o have_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o give_v to_o they_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v church_n in_o which_o case_n which_o be_v not_o our_o case_n now_o see_v they_o have_v leave_v we_o scripture_n we_o grant_v we_o shall_v have_v be_v in_o the_o decide_n of_o all_o controversy_n that_o can_v have_v arisen_a overrule_v by_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o such_o and_o therefore_o that_o be_v the_o case_n no_o better_o or_o ready_a way_n for_o the_o end_n of_o controversy_n shall_v there_o have_v be_v then_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o they_o be_v conversant_a and_o so_o by_o their_o tradition_n to_o have_v learn_v the_o certainty_n therein_o but_o thus_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n irenaeus_n speak_v of_o their_o tradition_n in_o the_o case_n suppose_v by_o he_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o by_o their_o tradition_n he_o understand_v that_o sound_a form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v by_o their_o preach_n &_o teach_v which_o they_o will_v &_o shall_v have_v be_v the_o same_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o speak_v &_o write_v by_o one_o spirit_n that_o now_o they_o have_v leave_v we_o in_o writing_n and_o therefore_o even_o then_o the_o romish_a church_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o far_o to_o seek_v as_o she_o be_v now_o for_o have_v any_o warrant_n from_o thence_o for_o those_o thing_n that_o she_o hold_v either_o contrary_a or_o beside_o the_o word_n write_v and_o that_o by_o tradition_n he_o mean_v here_o no_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v evident_a for_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n he_o say_v plain_o quod_fw-la tum_fw-la praeconiaverunt_fw-la postea_fw-la per_fw-la dei_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la nobis_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la in_o scripture_n columnam_fw-la &_o fundamentum_fw-la fidei_fw-la futurum_fw-la that_o be_v that_o which_o first_o they_o preach_v after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n have_v before_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n he_o after_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v thereby_o namely_o this_o that_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n &c_n &c_n as_o he_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n contrary_a to_o the_o fantastical_a frantic_a dream_n of_o valentinian_n so_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o that_o will_v even_o by_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o may_v learn_v what_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n be_v now_o what_o be_v this_o for_o the_o authorish_a the_o unwriten_a tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o be_v not_o only_o all_o beside_o the_o scripture_n but_o whereof_o the_o most_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o but_o this_o gentle_a reader_n be_v the_o right_a trick_n of_o all_o the_o crew_n of_o these_o romanist_n thus_o by_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o seek_v to_o colour_v their_o absurd_a opinion_n &_o so_o ere_fw-we thou_o be_v a_o ware_n to_o deceive_v thou_o if_o thou_o take_v not_o heed_n as_o for_o example_n to_o persuade_v a_o man_n to_o like_v of_o their_o beggarly_a unwritten_a tradition_n whatsoever_o any_o father_n speak_v of_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o plain_a in_o the_o author_n himself_o that_o thereby_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o such_o tradition_n as_o they_o yet_o that_o must_v be_v confident_o bring_v in_o as_o fit_v &_o most_o pregnant_a for_o their_o purpose_n likewise_o whatsoever_o any_o father_n have_v say_v of_o any_o sacramental_a change_n of_o the_o outward_a element_n for_o that_o therein_o their_o name_n use_v &_o estimation_n be_v change_v though_o the_o same_o father_n in_o a_o thousand_o other_o place_n show_v that_o his_o judgement_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o there_o in_o substance_n yet_o that_o must_v be_v quote_v as_o a_o flat_a place_n for_o popish_a transubstantiation_n and_o even_o so_o if_o they_o find_v in_o a_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n any_o mention_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o that_o which_o they_o dream_v to_o be_v there_o that_o must_v be_v urge_v as_o a_o strong_a place_n to_o prove_v their_o blasphemous_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a &_o the_o dead_a and_o this_o juggle_n with_o the_o father_n and_o cozen_v of_o their_o poor_a simple_a reader_n use_v they_o in_o all_o their_o controversy_n but_o at_o this_o time_n thou_o must_v pardon_v this_o preface_n writer_n this_o fault_n because_o herein_o he_o do_v but_o study_n to_o be_v like_o he_o before_o who_o book_n he_o have_v set_v this_o his_o preface_n for_o chapter_n the_o five_o he_o himself_o most_o gross_o commit_v this_o same_o fault_n in_o the_o detection_n whereof_o i_o have_v more_o at_o large_a discover_v this_o lewd_a deal_n of_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o not_o forget_v that_o irenaeus_n have_v teach_v we_o what_o that_o church_n be_v who_o those_o pastor_n be_v &_o what_o those_o tradition_n be_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v &_o be_v rule_v by_o namely_o only_o that_o church_n that_o have_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o her_o faith_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o those_o pastor_n that_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n li._n 4._o cap._n 43._o &_o those_o tradition_n which_o have_v good_a warrant_n from_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o whereof_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o place_n &_o reason_n quote_v by_o he_o either_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o father_n to_o bind_v we_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o church_n ordinance_n their_o prelate_n commandment_n &_o to_o the_o point_v warrant_v only_o by_o their_o tradition_n their_o church_n have_v another_o foundation_n of_o her_o faith_n then_o the_o word_n write_v namely_o always_o their_o pope_n will_n as_o it_o have_v &_o the_o commandment_n of_o their_o prelate_n &_o tradition_n be_v not_o only_o beside_o but_o also_o often_o most_o gross_o contrary_a to_o that_o word_n of_o god_n write_v as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o sundry_a place_n o_z i_o have_v do_v with_o albine_n in_o irenaeus_n judgement_n be_v but_o so_o many_o abusing_n and_o corrupting_n of_o their_o holy_a &_o good_a meaning_n and_o yet_o thus_o have_v to_o no_o purpose_n bestow_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o idle_a pain_n as_o one_o that_o have_v say_v enough_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a father_n the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_a region_n &_o prescription_n of_o time_n be_v all_o full_a &_o fast_o of_o his_o side_n he_o lusty_o brag_v p._n 22._o that_n if_o their_o be_v any_o weight_n in_o any_o or_o all_o these_o together_o that_o his_o side_n have_v the_o true_a gospel_n &_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o very_a christian_a religion_n their_o order_n of_o ceremony_n the_o right_a order_n and_o that_o their_o fast_n and_o pray_v be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o therefore_o their_o church_n be_v the_o lawful_a and_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n from_o which_o who_o so_o separate_v himself_o be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n this_o thus_o only_o say_v thereupon_o by_o and_o by_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o
in_o book_n in_o but_o that_o place_n you_o find_v not_o in_o this_o book_n some_o other_o place_n but_o at_o this_o time_n we_o must_v treat_v of_o our_o vocation_n to_o answer_v he_o and_o his_o complice_n how_o and_o by_o what_o virtue_n we_o exercise_v our_o ministry_n prove_v ministry_n this_o i_o deny_v that_o you_o come_v to_o your_o call_n in_o this_o sort_n for_o neither_o be_v there_o right_a succession_n among_o your_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n nor_o continuance_n in_o that_o truth_n which_o yet_o you_o say_v only_o &_o never_o prove_v we_o be_v call_v to_o this_o estate_n according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a way_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o by_o the_o continuance_n of_o one_o catholic_a faith_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o our_o day_n without_o the_o interruption_n of_o it_o universal_o 4._o universal_o that_o truth_n indeed_o have_v always_o continue_v and_o shall_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o faithful_a teacher_n but_o neither_o with_o you_o nor_o by_o mean_n of_o your_o teacher_n be_v at_o all_o prove_v by_o there_o place_n math._n 5._o ephes_n 4._o for_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v be_v ever_o clear_a and_o certain_a manifest_o shine_v like_o the_o light_n set_v on_o the_o table_n to_o give_v light_n to_o all_o those_o of_o the_o house_n and_o not_o under_o the_o bushel_n to_o be_v shadow_v with_o darkness_n saint_n paul_n they_o paul_n peruse_v the_o place_n &_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o though_o paul_n reckon_v up_o there_o those_o ministery_n which_o shall_v full_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o once_o mention_v not_o your_o grete_a prelacy_n howsoever_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v as_o you_o hold_v they_o be_v necessary_a and_o most_o necessary_a for_o the_o pomp_n of_o your_o church_n that_o so_o the_o better_a she_o may_v answer_v her_o pattern_n apoc_fw-la 17._o yet_o thereby_o we_o may_v see_v christ_n church_n shall_v &_o may_v grow_v to_o her_o perfection_n &_o yet_o never_o be_v acquaint_v with_o they_o after_o that_o he_o have_v recite_v by_o order_n the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n i_o mean_v of_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o euamgelist_n he_o do_v declare_v at_o the_o last_o the_o cause_n why_o they_o be_v institute_v be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n until_o say_v he_o that_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n we_o go_v to_o meet_v he_o he_o take_v his_o similitude_n of_o many_o that_o come_v from_o diverse_a way_n and_o meet_v all_o in_o one_o way_n produce_v way_n indeed_o he_o plain_o there_o teach_v tha●_n there_o shall_v be_v always_o to_o that_o end_n teacher_n in_o he_o church_n but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v so_o succeed_v one_o another_o either_o in_o person_n or_o place_n a●_n you_o will_v ●eene_v thereupon_o to_o build_v for_o no_o such_o line_n of_o continual_a local_a or_o personal_a succession_n from_o his_o time_n to_o this_o day_n can_v be_v produce_v and_o thus_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o spiritual_a edification_n of_o the_o church_n ordain_v of_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n shall_v endure_v until_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v through_o all_o nation_n by_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o which_o gospel_n both_o french_a spanish_a english_a greek_a persian_a arabian_a latin_n &_o barbares_fw-la with_o many_o other_o nation_n which_o be_v too_o iedi●●_n to_o name_n have_v meet_v together_o have_v of_o great_a antiquity_n all_o one_o kind_n of_o catholic_a faith_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n for_o ever_o as_o the_o some_o of_o god_n before_o he_o suffer_v do_v attain_v &_o arrive_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o age_n even_o so_o his_o mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v continue_v in_o this_o world_n until_o it_o be_v perfect_a in_o his_o member_n and_o that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o choose_a be_v accomplish_v and_o even_o as_o a_o material_a build_n can_v be_v perfect_o achieve_v without_o intermission_n without_o we_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o many_o great_a &_o goodly_a building_n in_o the_o end_n perfect_v in_o build_v whereof_o there_o have_v be_v many_o and_o sometime_o long_a intermission_n continuance_n of_o workman_n and_o mason_n even_o so_o the_o spiritual_a build_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v achieve_v without_o the_o succession_n of_o bi●●ops_n and_o pastor_n preach_v or_o cause_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v preach_v which_o be_v the_o very_a spiritual_a building_n the_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o common_a and_o visible_a in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o esay_n 62._o esay_n sap._n ●1_n say_v you_o well_o hit_v the_o place_n be_v in_o esay_n 62._o sap._n 61_o ●ho_fw-mi meaning_n to_o declare_v the_o care_n that_o god_n take_v as_o touch_v the_o preservation_n of_o his_o church_n he_o do_v say_v as_o it_o be_v represent_v the_o state_n of_o jerusalem_n i_o have_v establish_v and_o ordain_v year_n ordain_v but_o few_o such_o have_v be_v in_o your_o time_n of_o succession_n these_o many_o year_n watchman_n upon_o he_o wall_n the_o which_o shall_v never_o hold_v their_o peace_n neither_o day_n ●or_a night_n these_o watchman_n be_v those_o that_o have_v announce_v to_o we_o our_o sal●ation_n they_o be_v the_o trumpet_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o never_o have_v leave_v their_o ●ounding_n in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o this_o present_a day_n a_o answer_n to_o master_n john_n de_fw-fr albines_n discourse_n against_o heresy_n call_v and_o account_v by_o his_o friend_n a_o notable_a discourse_n to_o that_o purpose_n make_v by_o thomas_n spark_n pastor_n of_o blechley_n in_o the_o county_n of_o buck._n .1591_o chapter_n first_o calvin_n we_o esteem_v and_o account_v of_o as_o of_o a_o rare_a &_o singular_a minister_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o writing_n as_o they_o well_o deserve_v we_o think_v reverent_o of_o and_o you_o have_v try_v they_o to_o be_v of_o great_a force_n &_o power_n to_o shake_v the_o very_a ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o your_o babilonical_a building_n but_o our_o patriarch_n we_o neither_o account_v nor_o call_v he_o though_o you_o in_o your_o three_o word_n take_v it_o and_o therefore_o set_v it_o down_o for_o grant_v that_o we_o do_v it_o seem_v you_o think_v scorn_n that_o he_o shall_v charge_v your_o priesthood_n not_o to_o be_v of_o god_n and_o so_o to_o call_v you_o to_o a_o account_n of_o your_o vocation_n indeed_o i_o can_v blame_v you_o that_o it_o grieve_v you_o that_o that_o shall_v be_v call_v into_o question_n see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n you_o have_v brag_v on_o so_o long_o &_o have_v gain_v by_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o blind_a &_o ignorant_a both_o all_o the_o credit_n &_o wealth_n you_o have_v especial_o see_v also_o that_o what_o word_n soever_o you_o use_v to_o countenance_v the_o matter_n yet_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v it_o howbeit_o as_o though_o not_o only_o you_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v caluin_n to_o the_o full_a in_o this_o point_n but_o also_o as_o though_o there_o be_v either_o some_o great_a impiety_n or_o vanity_n at_o the_o least_o in_o his_o word_n you_o recite_v they_o twice_o admonish_v your_o reader_n that_o they_o be_v his_o word_n be_v it_o that_o they_o be_v so_o what_o have_v you_o say_v either_o to_o argue_v the_o least_o folly_n in_o they_o or_o to_o justify_v your_o vocation_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o therein_o he_o prove_v you_o must_v or_o else_o it_o can_v be_v of_o god_n first_o you_o will_v prove_v caluin_n in_o these_o word_n to_o offer_v you_o wrong_n in_o that_o out_o of_o the_o 5_o to_o the_o hebr._n he_o gather_v that_o unless_o you_o can_v prove_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o your_o vocation_n it_o can_v be_v of_o god_n because_o the_o civil_a law_n prescribe_v that_o one_o shall_v prove_v his_o right_n of_o possession_n before_o he_o demand_v it_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v restore_v the_o spoil_n before_o the_o suit_n proceed_v but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o that_o which_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o 5_o to_o the_o hebr._n do_v more_o justify_v his_o demand_n that_o either_o you_o must_v show_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o your_o priesthood_n or_o else_o confess_v that_o you_o be_v not_o call_v of_o god_n then_o any_o thing_n that_o you_o have_v note_v out_o of_o the_o civil_a law_n can_v prove_v that_o he_o offer_v you_o any_o wrong_n in_o call_v for_o this_o at_o your_o hand_n because_o you_o be_v a_o archdeacon_n it_o shall_v seem_v that_o you_o will_v feign_v that_o man_n shall_v think_v to_o the_o end_n you_o may_v be_v judge_v the_o fit_a man_n to_o execute_v your_o office_n that_o you_o have_v some_o skill_n in_o the_o
the_o condition_n of_o most_o of_o they_o or_o else_o if_o they_o do_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o the_o milk_n of_o god_n word_n which_o only_a saint_n peter_n warrant_v to_o be_v without_o deceit_n 1._o pet._n 2.2_o they_o feed_v they_o with_o vain_a dream_n fancy_n tale_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n for_o these_o only_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o which_o be_v proper_o now_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n when_o they_o be_v order_v their_o especial_a business_n appoint_v for_o they_o be_v to_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o beside_o the_o office_n of_o any_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o direct_o contrary_a both_o to_o their_o office_n and_o christ_n also_o for_o they_o by_o warrant_n express_o from_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v to_o teach_v their_o people_n that_o christ_n himself_o in_o his_o own_o person_n once_o for_o all_o when_o he_o die_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o for_o both_o quick_a and_o dead_a sole_o and_o whole_o full_o and_o effectual_o must_v serve_v the_o turn_n for_o ever_o and_o that_o in_o offer_v this_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n he_o be_v a_o everlasting_a priest_n and_o may_v have_v no_o successor_n either_o to_o offer_v another_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a or_o to_o offer_v this_o again_o as_o though_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o offer_v it_o well_o enough_o beside_o herein_o commission_n be_v give_v they_o direct_o to_o pervert_v christ_n institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o whereas_o by_o the_o right_a use_n thereof_o thereby_o shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o man_n the_o body_n break_v and_o blood_n shed_v of_o christ_n for_o he_o to_o be_v feed_v on_o and_o receive_v by_o he_o to_o salvation_n by_o their_o commission_n and_o intention_n herein_o they_o offer_v these_o thing_n to_o god_n the_o father_n further_o if_o we_o consider_v their_o read_n unto_o the_o people_n all_o in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n their_o pray_v to_o saint_n and_o angel_n their_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a their_o blasphemous_a imagination_n that_o they_o by_o breathe_v a_o set_a number_n of_o word_n upon_o a_o wafer_n cake_n make_v it_o very_a christ_n and_o other_o their_o superstitious_a and_o magical_a incatation_n and_o conjuration_n of_o water_n oil_n salt_n palm_n and_o other_o creature_n these_o be_v so_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v whatsoever_o here_o albine_n have_v say_v of_o they_o we_o may_v most_o justly_o and_o true_o advoutch_v they_o to_o be_v right_a priest_n of_o antichrist_n and_o consequent_o no_o right_a priest_n of_o christ_n but_o see_v he_o will_v needs_o so_o indefinite_o and_o general_o pronounce_v his_o sentence_n that_o their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o leave_v these_o general_a objection_n and_o reason_n against_o they_o and_o to_o come_v to_o some_o particular_a example_n first_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o he_o whereas_o there_o have_v be_v a_o twenty_o three_o schism_n at_o least_o in_o the_o papal_a see_v sometime_o two_o sometime_o three_o sometime_o four_o all_o at_o once_o contend_v that_o they_o be_v right_a pope_n which_o of_o these_o be_v always_o he_o that_o for_o the_o time_n be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o right_a bishop_n and_o if_o never_o but_o one_o of_o they_o yea_o sometime_o none_o of_o they_o be_v right_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o depose_v and_o suppress_v they_o and_o to_o set_v up_o a_o new_a they_o all_o during_o their_o time_n have_v have_v many_o follower_n and_o many_o be_v make_v bishop_n and_o priest_n by_o they_o and_o so_o success●uelie_o from_o these_o infinite_z other_o have_v have_v their_o consecration_n and_o order_n how_o can_v we_o count_v these_o right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o be_v make_v by_o such_o as_o have_v no_o right_a to_o make_v any_o or_o how_o shall_v we_o sever_v they_o that_o if_o they_o fetch_v their_o pedigree_n have_v have_v their_o original_n from_o such_o from_o those_o that_o be_v descend_v from_o they_o that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o right_a pope_n this_o nut_n will_v trouble_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n to_o crack_v but_o to_o deal_v plain_o and_o particular_o what_o can_v he_o or_o any_o of_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v dispose_v to_o be_v convince_v of_o wrangle_v by_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n say_v for_o joan_n the_o eight_o that_o in_o the_o end_n prove_v herself_o open_o in_o a_o solemn_a procession_n to_o be_v a_o harlot_n by_o her_o fruitfulness_n for_o christopher_n sergius_n laudo_fw-la john_n the_o 11.12_o &_o 13._o all_o pope_n in_o a_o row_n and_o yet_o especial_o advance_v unto_o and_o keep_v in_o that_o dignity_n by_o their_o concubine_n and_o harlot_n for_o silvester_n the_o second_o and_o a_o number_n of_o his_o successor_n who_o be_v promote_v by_o nicromancy_n and_o poison_v their_o predecessor_n or_o for_o hildebrand_n after_o call_v gregory_n 7._o who_o the_o same_o evening_n that_o his_o predecessor_n be_v dead_a thrust_v into_o the_o place_n not_o one_o cardinal_n subscribe_v to_o his_o election_n rather_o even_o by_o force_n then_o by_o any_o mean_n else_o boniface_n the_o eightth_v get_v the_o place_n by_o cozen_a celestine_n his_o predecessor_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o voice_n through_o a_o trunk_n through_o the_o wall_n of_o his_o chamber_n boniface_n the_o nine_o be_v choose_v pope_n by_o the_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n and_o yet_o as_o i_o say_v before_o when_o they_o choose_v he_o he_o be_v but_o twenty_o year_n old_a he_o can_v neither_o write_v nor_o sing_v nor_o understand_v his_o latin_a tongue_n balthasar_n de_fw-fr cossa_n cardinal_n through_o fear_n at_o bononia_n drive_v the_o cardinal_n to_o refer_v the_o nomination_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o there_o they_o be_v about_o to_o choose_v to_o himself_o who_o by_o and_o by_o choose_v and_o set_v up_o himself_o sixtus_n the_o four_o build_v a_o famous_a stew_n at_o rome_n of_o both_o kind_n as_o agryppa_n write_v of_o he_o and_o witness_v wesselus_n groningensis_n he_o grant_v a_o indulgence_n to_o the_o family_n of_o s._n lucia_n that_o for_o the_o three_o hot_a month_n in_o the_o year_n they_o may_v use_v the_o sin_n not_o to_o be_v name_v the_o like_a indulgence_n grant_v pope_n alexander_n the_o six_o to_o a_o spaniard_n petrus_n mendoza_n cardinal_n of_o valentia_n so_o to_o abuse_v his_o base_a son_n marques_n sanatensis_n monstrous_a be_v the_o incest_n adultery_n &_o sodomitry_n that_o story_n report_v of_o paul_n the_o 3._o and_o julius_n the_o 3._o his_o sodomitry_n especial_o with_o one_o innocentius_n while_o he_o be_v cardinal_n at_o bononia_n who_o therefore_o he_o make_v be_v still_o but_o a_o very_a boy_n cardinal_n when_o he_o be_v pope_n be_v in_o the_o story_n report_v very_o ill_o of_o and_o the_o rather_o that_o which_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v write_v of_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v true_a because_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v one_o hieron_n mutius_z set_v up_o public_o in_o book_n to_o defend_v certain_a filthy_a and_o loathsome_a amorous_a verse_n write_v by_o one_o camillus_n oliws_fw-la companion_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n to_o one_o hannibal_n coliws_n &_o that_o in_o his_o time_n johamnes_n casa_n archbishop_n of_o beneventum_n deane_n of_o the_o chamber_n apostolic_a and_o the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o dominion_n of_o venice_n write_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o that_o filthy_a fact_n of_o petrus_n aloysius_n paulus_n 3._o his_o son_n with_o cosmus_n cherius_n bishop_n of_o fane_n and_o that_o with_o the_o applause_n and_o like_n of_o that_o time_n now_o what_o will_v albine_n say_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o these_o be_v right_a pope_n bishop_n and_o cardinal_n right_n and_o seemly_a they_o may_v be_v to_o serve_v the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n otherwise_o such_o can_v never_o be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o if_o neither_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v concern_v their_o come_n to_o their_o place_n by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n nor_o this_o vaunt_n of_o he_o that_o their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v right_a bishop_n and_o priest_n can_v do_v he_o any_o good_a yet_o it_o may_v be_v he_o hope_v some_o credit_n will_v grow_v unto_o they_o in_o that_o he_o have_v say_v they_o have_v their_o place_n vy_z right_a succession_n indeed_o succession_n and_o the_o derivation_n of_o it_o without_o interruption_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n especial_o in_o their_o line_n of_o pope_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o such_o as_o he_o brag_v much_o of_o say_v that_o that_o they_o have_v &_o we_o have_v not_o &_o that_o therefore_o their_o church_n &_o the_o minister_n thereof_o
i_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o i_o find_v all_o these_o and_o the_o church_n under_o they_o still_o charge_v to_o hold_v error_n and_o heresy_n but_o this_o then_o withal_o i_o infer_v the_o more_o true_a that_o it_o be_v and_o have_v be_v thus_o with_o they_o the_o more_o evident_a it_o be_v of_o what_o small_a acount_n this_o personal_a and_o local_a succession_n be_v of_o itself_o either_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n or_o their_o religion_n that_o can_v plead_v that_o and_o this_o further_o i_o add_v if_o these_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n to_o make_v their_o allege_v succession_n to_o be_v of_o no_o value_n than_o there_o be_v as_o great_a cause_n why_o succession_n brag_v on_o so_o much_o by_o the_o romanist_n shall_v be_v reject_v as_o a_o thing_n not_o worth_a the_o name_n for_o not_o only_o in_o inferior_a place_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o they_o will_v not_o strive_v with_o we_o about_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o heretic_n among_o they_o but_o also_o even_o in_o their_o line_n of_o pope_n who_o as_o some_o of_o they_o hold_v can_v err_v there_o have_v be_v sundry_a heretic_n also_o for_o tertullian_n contra_fw-la praxeam_fw-la write_v of_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o do_v allow_v of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o montanus_n &_o as_o he_o say_v therefore_o send_v letter_n of_o communion_n to_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o phrigia_n thereabouts_o and_o athanasius_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la solitariam_fw-la vitam_fw-la agentes_fw-la and_o so_o also_o damasus_n in_o the_o life_n of_o liberius_n and_o hieron_n de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la scriptoribus_fw-la testify_v that_o pope_n liberius_n be_v draw_v in_o the_o end_n to_o subscribe_v to_o arianisme_n and_o honorius_n die_v a_o heretic_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n act._n 12._o &_o 13._o etc._n etc._n liberatus_n also_o breviarii_n cap._n 22._o witness_v that_o vigilius_n in_o secret_a favour_a heretic_n anastasius_n the_o second_o fall_v into_o a_o condemn_a heresy_n as_o we_o read_v dist_n 19_o cap._n anastasius_n and_o therefore_o will_v have_v restore_v accatius_n a_o condemn_a heretic_n and_o yet_o i_o say_v nothing_o of_o pope_n john_n 23._o condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n &_o the_o school_n of_o paris_n for_o deny_v in_o effect_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n yea_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n be_v so_o open_a and_o strong_a that_o it_o have_v cause_v their_o own_o friend_n to_o condemn_v they_o of_o gross_a flattery_n that_o hold_v that_o pope_n have_v not_o and_o can_v fall_v into_o heresy_n as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o will_v read_v alphonsus_n contra_fw-la haereses_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o &_o 4._o lyra_n upon_o the_o 16_o of_o matth._n and_o the_o three_o synodall_n epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n and_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v now_o hold_v as_o gross_a and_o palpable_a error_n and_o heresy_n as_o they_o charge_v these_o withal_o if_o i_o prove_v not_o ere_o i_o have_v do_v with_o albine_n i_o will_v never_o crave_v credit_n either_o to_o our_o minister_n or_o to_o our_o church_n and_o cause_n wherefore_o to_o leave_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o to_o his_o place_n or_o place_n to_o go_v on_o with_o that_o which_o i_o have_v undertake_v to_o prove_v against_o they_o concern_v this_o their_o brag_n of_o right_a succession_n whereas_o three_o i_o say_v that_o though_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o deduce_v or_o derive_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n wtout_fw-fr interruption_n any_o local_a and_o personal_a succession_n unto_o our_o minister_n that_o now_o be_v yet_o as_o long_o as_o we_o teach_v and_o our_o people_n embrace_v the_o same_o doctrine_n that_o they_o teach_v we_o be_v well_o enough_o whatsoever_o they_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o rest_v only_o now_o in_o this_o case_n to_o be_v prove_v but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o least_o in_o this_o my_o assertion_n i_o be_v mistake_v i_o will_v first_o that_o it_o be_v mark_v that_o i_o speak_v but_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n that_o be_v if_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o set_v down_o a_o continue_a line_n down_o from_o they_o to_o we_o without_o any_o interruption_n for_o in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n follow_v i_o hope_v i_o shall_v set_v down_o such_o a_o descent_n of_o our_o church_n from_o they_o to_o we_o as_o whereby_o it_o may_v sufficient_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v never_o age_n nor_o time_n since_o but_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n have_v have_v her_o teacher_n and_o hearer_n second_o i_o will_v have_v it_o also_o understand_v that_o my_o meaning_n be_v though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o we_o can_v not_o make_v recital_n or_o demonstration_n of_o any_o such_o descent_n or_o succession_n in_o that_o process_n of_o time_n distance_n of_o place_n and_o the_o force_n and_o subtlety_n of_o our_o enemy_n keep_v we_o from_o know_v their_o name_n person_n and_o place_n that_o yet_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n among_o man_n i_o constant_o hold_v and_o believe_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o continual_a and_o uninterrupt_a succession_n of_o teacher_n and_o embracer_n of_o god_n truth_n whereof_o his_o church_n consist_v even_o from_o the_o first_o beginning_n thereof_o and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n only_o this_o be_v it_o that_o thereby_o i_o be_o content_v be_v insinuate_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o such_o minister_n as_o god_n do_v raise_v up_o unto_o they_o according_a unto_o his_o good_a pleasure_n whither_o ordinary_o or_o extraordinary_o and_o that_o they_o embrace_v no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v witness_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o then_o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v apostolic_a and_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o case_n especial_o in_o and_o after_o great_a persecution_n ruin_n &_o long_a oppression_n of_o their_o member_n &_o child_n they_o need_v not_o to_o be_v daunt_v nor_o discourage_v neither_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o minister_n and_o teacher_n nor_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o doctrine_n though_o they_o can_v be_v able_a lineal_o to_o name_v the_o person_n either_o by_o who_o their_o minister_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n have_v have_v their_o vocation_n derive_v unto_o they_o or_o else_o by_o who_o ever_o since_o that_o truth_n have_v be_v continue_v for_o howsoever_o in_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n while_o they_o stand_v in_o flourish_v or_o unoppressed_a state_n and_o condition_n by_o the_o fury_n of_o persecutor_n there_o be_v a_o set_a order_n and_o form_n visible_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o vocation_n of_o church_n minister_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o estate_n and_o time_n it_o be_v easy_a for_o they_o that_o live_v therein_o or_o within_o the_o knowledge_n and_o remembrance_n thereof_o to_o make_v demonstration_n of_o the_o line_n of_o succeson_n yet_o when_o in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v oppress_v as_o now_o a_o long_a a_o time_n they_o have_v be_v under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n then_o and_o after_o such_o a_o time_n such_o a_o thing_n grow_v to_o many_o not_o only_o hard_a but_o also_o impossible_a and_o in_o such_o time_n we_o find_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o power_n to_o continue_v yet_o his_o church_n raise_v up_o man_n though_o not_o by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n use_v in_o the_o former_a time_n as_o after_o the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o persecution_n there_o when_o stephen_n be_v stone_v we_o read_v that_o the_o disciple_n be_v disperse_v and_o namely_o with_o they_o philip_n the_o deacon_n that_o he_o preach_v the_o apostle_n not_o aware_a thereof_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o appear_v so_o under_o constantine_n antonius_n the_o eremite_n teach_v at_o alexandria_n and_o under_o valens_n aphraates_n flavianus_n and_o julianus_n at_o antioch_n be_v then_o but_o monk_n who_o in_o those_o day_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o count_v among_o clerk_n as_o we_o read_v in_o nicephorus_n libro_fw-la 11._o chap._n 15._o these_o thing_n thus_o premise_v thereby_o not_o only_o my_o meaning_n shall_v right_o be_v conceive_v but_o also_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o some_o sort_n be_v already_o confirm_v but_o my_o reason_n indeed_o be_v that_o true_a and_o sound_o apostolic_a doctrine_n in_o the_o good_a providence_n of_o god_n towards_o his_o church_n open_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o though_o by_o man_n not_o come_v to_o their_o place_n of_o teach_v by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n always_o but_o sometime_o somewhat_o
extraordinary_o as_o he_o see_v need_v thereof_o be_v and_o may_v be_v such_o effectual_a seed_n to_o beget_v child_n unto_o god_n and_o so_o wholesome_a food_n to_o feed_v they_o yea_o even_o until_o they_o grow_v to_o a_o full_a age_n &_o perfection_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o though_o their_o teacher_n can_v show_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o call_n who_o always_o successive_o in_o person_n and_o place_n have_v go_v before_o they_o yet_o even_o this_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n do_v prove_v they_o and_o their_o people_n to_o be_v apostolic_a church_n whereas_o though_o they_o can_v do_v the_o other_o without_o this_o it_o be_v nothing_o and_o because_o my_o adversary_n seem_v in_o this_o point_n &_o otherwise_o to_o make_v great_a reckon_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o augustine_n i_o will_v stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o this_o whither_o to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_a without_o the_o other_o local_a and_o personal_a demonstrable_a succession_n and_o not_o this_o without_o that_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o four_o book_n and_o forty_o three_o chapter_n teach_v we_o only_o to_o obey_v those_o elder_n in_o the_o church_n which_o from_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopric_n have_v receive_v charisma_n veritatis_fw-la certum_fw-la secundum_fw-la placitum_fw-la patris_fw-la that_o be_v the_o certain_a gift_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n for_o as_o for_o all_o other_o whatsoever_o they_o pretend_v for_o he_o except_v nothing_o he_o there_o immediate_o show_v that_o absistunt_fw-la a_o principali_fw-la successione_n that_o be_v they_o be_v go_v from_o the_o principal_a succession_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v suspect_v and_o tertullian_n in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n de_fw-la praescriptionibus_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la quote_v by_o albine_n after_o in_o his_o 9_o chapter_n immediate_o after_o the_o word_n there_o cite_v by_o he_o wherein_o he_o call_v for_o personal_a succession_n have_v add_v these_o confingant_fw-la tale_n aliquid_fw-la haeretici_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o let_v heretic_n devise_v some_o such_o thing_n for_o after_o blasphemy_n what_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o say_v he_o but_o though_o they_o do_v fain_o some_o such_o thing_n yet_o it_o shall_v nothing_o prevail_v they_o for_o their_o doctrine_n compare_v with_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n by_o the_o diversity_n &_o contrariety_n thereof_o will_v pronounce_v that_o it_o have_v neither_o apostle_n nor_o apostolic_a man_n to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o for_o say_v he_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v not_o among_o themselves_o contrary_a thing_n so_o neither_o do_v apostolic_a man_n teach_v contrary_a thing_n to_o those_o that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v after_o this_o sort_n therefore_o let_v they_o be_v provoke_v by_o those_o church_n which_o though_o they_o can_v produce_v either_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n to_o be_v the_o founder_n thereof_o in_o that_o they_o be_v long_o after_o plant_v as_o daily_o there_o be_v tamen_fw-la in_o eâdem_fw-la fide_fw-la conspirantes_fw-la non_fw-la minùs_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la deputantur_fw-la pro_fw-la consanguinitate_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la yet_o they_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o one_o faith_n be_v no_o less_o to_o be_v repute_v apostolic_a church_n than_o they_o that_o be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n what_o can_v be_v plain_a than_o this_o to_o show_v that_o though_o our_o church_n can_v not_o satisfy_v his_o request_n in_o plead_v the_o former_a succession_n that_o yet_o if_o they_o can_v show_v this_o that_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o apostle_n in_o doctrine_n that_o they_o therefore_o be_v far_o rather_o apostolic_a than_o they_o that_o can_v produce_v the_o former_a without_o this_o and_o though_o augustine_n in_o his_o 165._o epistle_n and_o also_o in_o his_o four_o chapter_n against_o the_o manichee_n epistle_n which_o they_o call_v their_o foundation_n remember_v by_o albine_n cap._n 6._o do_v there_o seem_v to_o make_v great_a reckon_n of_o personal_a succession_n yet_o when_o he_o have_v show_v of_o what_o force_n that_o and_o some_o other_o reason_n be_v with_o he_o he_o prefer_v truth_n indeed_o warrant_v by_o the_o scripture_n before_o they_o all_o wherefore_o what_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o vanity_n of_o their_o brag_n of_o personal_a and_o local_a succession_n either_o to_o justify_v they_o or_o to_o disgrace_v our_o church_n or_o ministry_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v but_o all_o this_o labour_n will_n albine_n say_v i_o may_v have_v spare_v for_o he_o speak_v not_o simple_o of_o succession_n but_o express_o of_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n and_o to_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v thereby_o he_o express_o add_v the_o continuance_n of_o one_o catholic_a faith_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o our_o day_n without_o the_o interruption_n of_o it_o universal_o at_o any_o time_n moreover_o i_o confess_v that_o sundry_a time_n after_o so_o forcible_a be_v the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n with_o he_o that_o in_o word_n he_o confess_v that_o personal_a and_o local_a succession_n without_o continuance_n in_o this_o truth_n be_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o urge_v and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v of_o this_o point_n be_v not_o needless_a for_o beside_o that_o few_o of_o his_o opinion_n will_v be_v bring_v to_o confess_v thus_o much_o this_o both_o in_o other_o and_o in_o himself_o in_o sundry_a chapter_n follow_v may_v be_v observe_v that_o when_o this_o confession_n be_v make_v by_o any_o of_o they_o it_o be_v wring_v from_o they_o much_o against_o their_o will_n for_o their_o show_n of_o proof_n run_v whole_o for_o the_o magnify_n of_o personal_a succession_n to_o be_v the_o mark_n whereby_o true_a church_n and_o the_o minister_n thereof_o may_v undoubted_o be_v discern_v again_o if_o in_o this_o he_o speak_v as_o he_o think_v why_o do_v he_o make_v so_o much_o ado_n about_o the_o personal_a and_o visible_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o never_o join_v this_o issue_n with_o we_o to_o try_v out_o sound_o and_o thorough_o whither_o they_o or_o we_o have_v this_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a truth_n for_o herein_o only_o lie_v all_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o and_o this_o determine_v the_o question_n betwixt_o we_o be_v quite_o end_v let_v they_o once_o therefore_o but_o prove_v indeed_o that_o they_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o this_o sound_a truth_n and_o that_o always_o down_o from_o the_o apostle_n they_o have_v continue_v therein_o if_o we_o join_v not_o straight_o with_o they_o and_o repent_v we_o hearty_o of_o our_o departure_n from_o they_o accurse_a be_v we_o yea_o if_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o compare_v their_o doctrine_n with_o that_o which_o we_o be_v most_o sure_a the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o be_v both_o diverse_a from_o that_o and_o contrary_a unto_o it_o understand_v by_o their_o doctrine_n as_o we_o do_v that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o they_o and_o wherein_o we_o be_v against_o they_o let_v we_o for_o ever_o lose_v our_o credit_n and_o cause_n now_o for_o the_o decyde_n and_o determine_v of_o this_o great_a &_o main_a controversy_n we_o appeal_v to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o we_o know_v be_v most_o fit_a and_o sufficient_a judge_n herein_o whereunto_o unless_o they_o will_v deserve_v the_o name_n of_o lucifugae_fw-la that_o be_v of_o shunner_n of_o the_o light_n which_o for_o the_o like_a cause_n tertullian_n give_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n the_o resurrect_a carnis_fw-la they_o will_v be_v content_v to_o bring_v their_o doctrine_n as_o to_o the_o touchstone_n indeed_o in_o tertullian_n and_o iraeneus_n time_n the_o heretic_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o their_o work_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o their_o opinion_n flee_v from_o this_o touchstone_n and_o when_o they_o be_v urge_v herewith_o they_o behave_v themselves_o the_o like_a these_o our_o adversary_n that_o ever_o i_o see_v for_o iraeneus_n in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n testify_v thus_o of_o they_o cùm_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n arguuntur_fw-la in_fw-la accusationem_fw-la convertuntur_fw-la ipsarum_fw-la quasi_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la habeant_fw-la neque_fw-la sint_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la variè_fw-la sunt_fw-la dictae_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la ex_fw-la his_fw-la inveniri_fw-la veritas_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la traditionem_fw-la that_o be_v when_o they_o be_v reprove_v by_o the_o scripture_n than_o they_o be_v turn_v straight_o into_o a_o accusation_n of_o they_o as_o though_o they_o be_v not_o right_a nor_o be_v of_o authority_n both_o because_o they_o be_v so_o set_v down_o as_o that_o variable_o or_o diverse_o they_o may_v be_v take_v and_o because_o by_o they_o the_o truth_n can_v be_v find_v out_o by_o those_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o tradition_n this_o notwithstanding_o it_o appear_v both_o there_o and_o elsewhere_o that_o he_o call_v they_o to_o this_o trial_n
catholic_n that_o withstand_v the_o arrian_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o emperor_n have_v but_o a_o poor_a visibility_n to_o brag_v of_o yea_o piggius_n your_o own_o man_n confess_v hierar_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o that_o their_o poison_n have_v defile_v not_o a_o part_n but_o almost_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o so_o much_o that_o almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n not_o only_o of_o the_o east_n but_o also_o of_o the_o west_n by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o be_v blind_v and_o no_o small_a time_n continue_v this_o heresy_n and_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o brag_v then_o as_o much_o of_o visible_a succession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o universality_n as_o ever_o since_o you_o have_v do_v call_v the_o true_a christian_n homousian_o as_o you_o do_v now_o lutheran_n &_o zwinglian_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o those_o that_o write_v against_o they_o you_o may_v see_v therefore_o that_o these_o weapon_n or_o stay_v be_v common_a to_o you_o with_o blasphemous_a and_o condemn_a heretic_n these_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o experiment_n therefore_o cause_v august_n upon_o the_o 10._o psalm_n &_o 78._o epist_n to_o compare_v the_o church_n unto_o the_o moon_n which_o beside_o the_o monthly_a wayning_n suffer_v oftentimes_o ecclipsy_n and_o sure_o unless_o we_o be_v too_o too_o wilful_a all_o these_o thing_n together_o may_v make_v we_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n both_o before_o christ_n &_o since_o have_v often_o fail_v to_o carry_v any_o such_o outward_a visible_a show_n in_o theey_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o make_v at_o all_o time_n demonstration_n of_o her_o pastor_n &_o teacher_n who_o they_o be_v and_o where_o they_o teach_v as_o you_o our_o adversary_n will_v bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v and_o therefore_o for_o answer_v to_o this_o chapter_n to_o any_o reasonable_a man_n this_o be_v sufficient_a the_o ii_o chapter_n saint_n other_o saint_n thus_o you_o be_v fall_v from_o prove_v that_o you_o be_v come_v to_o your_o place_n by_o the_o ordinary_a call_n of_o such_o as_o have_v ri_fw-la ht_o succeed_v one_o another_o both_o in_o person_n office_n &_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v to_o show_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n to_o continue_v &_o settle_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v another_o point_n for_o though_o this_o be_v grant_v you_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o thereby_o win_v the_o other_o paul_n follow_v this_o discourse_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n where_o as_o he_o do_v declare_v unto_o we_o the_o fruit_n that_o do_v proceed_v of_o this_o succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o of_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o reasonable_a sheep_n in_o one_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a doctrine_n call_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n for_o he_o say_v that_o god_n establish_v this_o order_n to_o that_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v like_o light_a child_n antichrist_n child_n the_o more_o be_v your_o sin_n that_o have_v suffer_v yourselves_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o enticement_n of_o antichrist_n carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o false_a doctrine_n through_o the_o subtility_n of_o man_n &_o their_o crafty_a word_n full_a of_o deceit_n in_o these_o word_n you_o do_v see_v how_o the_o apostle_n do_v declare_v unto_o we_o the_o counsel_n &_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ghost_n ghost_n if_o you_o have_v be_v constant_a in_o this_o faith_n we_o and_o you_o have_v be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n and_o unless_o we_o can_v ●ustifie_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v even_o so_o ground_v as_o you_o say_v we_o will_v forsake_v it_o and_o join_v with_o you_o but_o if_o we_o can_v than_o you_o be_v to_o forsake_v you_o &_o to_o join_v with_o we_o if_o you_o will_v answer_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o mean_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v constant_a in_o our_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o interpret_v &_o declare_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o doctor_n &_o pastor_n that_o successive_o have_v continue_v in_o one_o kind_n of_o faith_n &_o catholic_n religion_n from_o the_o first_o time_n that_o it_o be_v preach_v with_o out_o turn_v with_o every_o wind_n but_o rather_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o stand_v firm_a &_o stable_a here_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n do_v tell_v how_o he_o have_v leave_v we_o pastor_n &_o doctor_n to_o warn_v we_o of_o the_o subtlety_n of_o false_a teacher_n he_o do_v use_v a_o certain_a greek_a word_n very_o apt_a for_o this_o purpose_n the_o which_o have_v in_o english_a the_o signification_n of_o the_o be_v the_o i_o will_v not_o you_o have_v forget_v this_o note_n for_o it_o do_v lively_o paint_v out_o your_o doctor_n which_o by_o this_o their_o skill_n in_o cog_a and_o cozen_v do_v make_v the_o scripture_n to_o have_v a_o flexible_a sense_n always_o suitable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o your_o romish_a church_n how_o variable_a so_o ever_o that_o be_v play_v or_o cog_a at_z dise_z and_o even_o as_o he_o that_o have_v no_o great_a skill_n if_o he_o play_v with_o such_o a_o one_o he_o will_v soon_o lose_v his_o money_n because_o the_o other_o can_v cast_v what_o he_o will_v even_o so_o if_o a_o simple_a man_n be_v unlearned_a do_v chance_n to_o talk_v with_o such_o a_o one_o as_o can_v cog_v or_o to_o speak_v plain_o false_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n he_o may_v soon_o be_v deceive_v as_o we_o see_v it_o daily_o happen_v to_o many_o that_o play_v away_o &_o put_v in_o hazard_n the_o rest_n of_o all_o their_o spiritual_a inheritance_n i_o mean_v the_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v leave_v to_o they_o by_o their_o father_n from_o age_n to_o age_n since_o christ_n time_n thus_o have_v the_o arrian_n the_o nestorian_n &_o diverse_a other_o heretic_n deceive_v many_o a_o man_n as_o i_o will_v show_v more_o at_o large_a hereafter_o the_o ii_o chapter_n in_o this_o second_o chapter_n you_o observe_v further_o out_o of_o the_o 4_o to_o the_o ephe._n before_o allege_v that_o god_n establish_v a_o ministry_n in_o his_o church_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v like_o child_n carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o vain_a doctrine_n through_o the_o subtlety_n of_o man_n &_o their_o crafty_a word_n full_a of_o deceit_n whereupon_o you_o infer_v that_o thereby_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o our_o faith_n ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v &_o declare_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o doctor_n &_o pastor_n that_o successive_o have_v continue_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o the_o same_z who_o of_o we_o ever_o either_o write_v speak_v or_o think_v otherwise_o but_o herein_o be_v your_o subtlety_n that_o you_o take_v this_o still_a for_o grant_v which_o indeed_o be_v the_o main_a question_n betwixt_o we_o and_o for_o determination_n whereof_o on_o your_o side_n you_o have_v as_o yet_o say_v nothing_o that_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o your_o synagogue_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o be_v that_o faith_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o which_o we_o constant_o deny_v affirm_v the_o faith_n &_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o be_v that_o indeed_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v we_o constant_a and_o settle_a and_o which_o have_v always_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o justify_v out_o of_o the_o word_n write_v by_o the_o true_a pastor_n thereof_o in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o therefore_o herein_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o but_o the_o we_o understand_v it_o of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n make_v as_o much_o for_o we_o as_o for_o you_o we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o false_a teacher_n and_o wrong_a interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n worthy_o there_o may_v have_v their_o subtlety_n express_v by_o a_o word_n import_v cog_a or_o cozen_n but_o then_o still_o we_o add_v that_o your_o teacher_n a_o long_a time_n have_v be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v use_v and_o yet_o do_v use_v that_o cog_a trick_n which_o if_o it_o will_v please_v you_o once_o by_o the_o sound_a rule_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n to_o let_v your_o interpretation_n and_o we_o be_v examine_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v most_o manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n quick_o the_o iii_o chapter_n the_o place_n that_o i_o have_v quote_v of_o the_o apostle_n do_v show_v how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o cogger_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o likewise_o how_o certain_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v us._n be_v such_o interpretation_n of_o the_o doctor_n we_o will_v most_o willing_o follow_v and_o if_o you_o shall_v you_o will_v
quick_o forsake_v your_o popery_n and_o join_v with_o us._n to_o follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n stand_v to_o that_o that_o ever_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v teach_v &_o not_o to_o turn_v at_o every_o blast_n upon_o this_o matter_n one_o haer_fw-mi one_o lib._n con_v haer_fw-mi vincentius_n lyrinensis_n who_o flourish_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o he_o say_v thus_o if_o any_o man_n perchance_o demand_v say_v since_o that_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v certain_a &_o write_v &_o yea_o and_o more_o than_o sufficient_a say_v he_o mark_v he_o grant_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a how_o be_v then_o that_o true_a which_o your_o andradius_fw-la say_v the_o great_a part_n be_v leave_v to_o tradition_n not_o write_v sufficient_a of_o themselves_o and_o what_o need_n have_v we_o they_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n he_o answer_v for_o that_o say_v he_o that_o the_o secret_n &_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v such_o that_o every_o man_n do_v not_o understand_v they_o &_o interpret_v they_o after_o one_o sort_n but_o that_o of_o one_o place_n this_o man_n &_o that_o man_n shall_v seem_v to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n be_v clean_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o so_o that_o look_v how_o many_o man_n so_o many_o interpretation_n for_o one_o way_n it_o be_v interpret_v by_o nestorius_n another_o way_n by_o arrius_n another_o way_n by_o sabellius_n &_o so_o forth_o according_a to_o diverse_a heresy_n that_o have_v rise_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n among_o so_o many_o error_n to_o draw_v the_o scripture_n the_o and_o for_o these_o reason_n we_o allow_v of_o vincentius_n rule_n understanding_n as_o he_o do_v that_o by_o the_o right_a line_n and_o rule_v of_o interpret_n be_v mean_v that_o sense_n which_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o catholic_a church_n for_o no_o other_o sense_n we_o give_v of_o the_o scripture_n right_a line_n of_o the_o prophetical_a &_o apostolical_a interpretation_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n &_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o be_v the_o learned_a opinion_n of_o this_o ancient_a father_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n the_o iii_o chapter_n in_o the_o 3_o chapter_n you_o say_v as_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n as_o in_o the_o second_o for_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n indeed_o and_o not_o your_o late_a synagogue_n of_o rome_n false_o by_o you_o so_o name_v because_o neither_o it_o nor_o the_o faith_n thereof_o be_v universal_a neither_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n nor_o person_n whatsoever_o you_o have_v write_v therein_o we_o confess_v to_o be_v most_o true_a and_o sure_o we_o be_v it_o make_v more_o for_o we_o then_o for_o you_o for_o we_o never_o deny_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v needful_a according_a to_o vincentius_n rule_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o certain_a we_o be_v that_o we_o be_v far_o better_a able_a to_o justify_v our_o interpretation_n thereby_o than_o you_o be_v you_o and_o he_o live_v a_o 1000_o year_n ago_o as_o you_o write_v we_o bold_o affirm_v that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o her_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n before_o or_o in_o his_o time_n teach_v the_o error_n and_o heresy_n now_o teach_v by_o you_o for_o the_o which_o we_o account_v your_o antichristian_a and_o yet_o as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n most_o beggarly_a you_o beg_v this_o principle_n that_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n so_o here_o in_o this_o you_o beg_v this_o also_o that_o your_o church_n be_v the_o true_a and_o undoubted_a catholic_a church_n but_o you_o must_v understand_v howsoever_o your_o own_o friend_n will_v give_v you_o at_o your_o first_o ask_v both_o these_o that_o yet_o we_o will_v grant_v you_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o and_o therefore_o write_v as_o you_o will_v seem_v purposely_o against_o we_o you_o shall_v not_o thus_o miserable_o always_o have_v beg_v they_o at_o our_o hand_n but_o by_o sound_n and_o just_a proof_n at_o least_o have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o you_o have_v just_a right_n thereunto_o and_o then_o with_o some_o more_o honesty_n and_o credit_n may_v you_o have_v go_v on_o in_o this_o supposal_n that_o they_o be_v you_o this_o also_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o when_o it_o be_v in_o question_n which_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o religion_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o it_o be_v always_o also_o in_o question_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o as_o both_o part_n imagine_v they_o have_v the_o truth_n so_o will_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n your_o friend_n also_o and_o all_o other_o must_v be_v advertise_v that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o damnable_a heretic_n to_o brag_v much_o both_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n &_o of_o the_o doctor_n thereof_o least_o through_o too_o much_o simplicity_n they_o think_v straight_o that_o you_o have_v all_o these_o thing_n on_o your_o side_n because_o you_o have_v they_o so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o in_o your_o mouth_n for_o as_o cyprian_n write_v epist_n ad_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la de_fw-la baptizandis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la the_o novation_n after_o the_o fashion_n of_o ape_n challenge_v unto_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o other_o they_o call_v heretic_n and_o we_o read_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o arius_n macedonius_n and_o donatus_n these_o heretic_n account_v themselves_o the_o only_a christian_n and_o that_o the_o true_a christian_n indeed_o be_v count_v by_o they_o homousian_o macarians_n caesarian_n and_o caecilianist_n so_o do_v tertullian_n the_o prescrip_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la testify_v that_o the_o heretic_n do_v in_o his_o time_n so_o do_v the_o donatist_n say_v august_n contra_n epist_n parm_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o and_o epist_n 161._o and_o he_o write_v contra_n epist_n fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o that_o among_o the_o manichee_n there_o be_v great_a brag_n of_o the_o truth_n bernard_n also_o in_o his_o 66._o sermon_n upon_o the_o canticle_n speak_v against_o certain_a filthy_a heretic_n that_o condemn_a marriage_n and_o superstitious_o abstein_v from_o meat_n yet_o say_v that_o they_o glory_v that_o they_o alone_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n brag_v also_o that_o they_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a &_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o indeed_o we_o find_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n then_o to_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v the_o church_n and_o catholic_a truth_n on_o their_o side_n and_o very_o usual_a we_o find_v it_o also_o with_o they_o to_o stand_v much_o upon_o father_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o heresy_n for_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o 1._o action_n that_o eutiches_n brag_v that_o he_o have_v read_v cyprian_a and_o athanasius_n yea_o that_o then_o and_o there_o he_o confident_o say_v for_o his_o defence_n that_o he_o have_v so_o learn_v of_o his_o ancient_a predecessor_n and_o that_o he_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o that_o faith_n have_v live_v and_o hope_v to_o die_v in_o it_o and_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 4._o action_n of_o the_o same_o council_n that_o carosus_n a_o eutichian_a heretic_n say_v stout_o i_o believe_v thus_o according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o 318._o father_n and_o so_o be_v i_o baptize_v dioscorus_n also_o in_o the_o 1._o act_n of_o that_o council_n cry_v and_o say_v i_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n athanasius_n gregory_n and_o cyrill_n on_o my_o side_n i_o go_v not_o from_o they_o in_o any_o thing_n i_o be_o cast_v out_o with_o the_o father_n i_o defend_v the_o father_n doctrine_n i_o have_v their_o testimony_n even_o set_v down_o in_o their_o book_n for_o i_o and_o as_o we_o read_v in_o august_n contra_fw-la cresconium_fw-la the_o donatist_n 2._o book_n cap._n 23._o and_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n cap._n 17._o he_o cite_v for_o himself_o cyprian_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o maximinus_n the_o heretic_n against_o who_o august_n write_v use_v to_o allege_v for_o his_o defence_n the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o therefore_o augustine_n say_v unto_o he_o neither_o will_v i_o object_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o thou_o neither_o ought_v thou_o to_o object_n that_o of_o ariminum_n against_o i_o 3._o book_n 14._o chap._n what_o a_o vain_a thing_n be_v it_o these_o thing_n consider_v for_o you_o and_o your_o fellow_n then_o to_o carry_v away_o the_o simple_a under_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o catholic_a truth_n catholic_a church_n
suffer_v their_o chronicler_n to_o mention_v they_o or_o else_o in_o cause_v they_o to_o deface_v they_o with_o strange_a name_n and_o false_a slander_n make_v it_o very_o hard_a yea_o if_o impossible_a not_o marvel_v you_o have_v the_o evidence_n whereby_o we_o shall_v do_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o long_a time_n in_o your_o own_o keep_n to_o use_v at_o your_o own_o pleasure_n for_o we_o to_o name_n from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o place_n and_o person_n that_o have_v always_o succeed_v one_o another_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o church_n but_o to_o return_v again_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o place_n of_o the_o canticle_n further_o i_o say_v as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o you_o err_v in_o allege_v this_o or_o any_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v safe_o account_v those_o flock_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v follow_v and_o those_o shepherd_n true_a shepherd_n and_o therefore_o meet_v always_o to_o be_v consent_v unto_o that_o lineal_o down_o from_o christ_n can_v deduce_v their_o personal_a succession_n for_o so_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v of_o yourselves_o sundry_a heretic_n in_o their_o time_n have_v do_v and_o can_v do_v still_o if_o therefore_o you_o say_v you_o mean_v still_o that_o flock_n and_o those_o shepherd_n that_o together_o with_o their_o visible_a personal_a succession_n have_v always_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o true_a ancient_a faith_n i_o answer_v first_o you_o beg_v still_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n in_o suppose_v that_o to_o have_v be_v always_o join_v with_o your_o flock_n and_o shepherd_n which_o we_o say_v and_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v they_o fall_v from_o many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o second_o i_o tell_v you_o once_o again_o and_o now_o this_o time_n for_o all_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v but_o that_o both_o that_o personal_a succession_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o truth_n and_o also_o truth_n from_o it_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v neither_o a_o certain_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o three_o for_o your_o collection_n out_o of_o this_o place_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o your_o church_n before_o we_o because_o as_o you_o say_v from_o time_n to_o time_n for_o this_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n you_o can_v show_v the_o descent_n and_o continuance_n of_o you_o and_o we_o can_v of_o we_o for_o one_o hundred_o year_n no_o not_o beyond_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o seventeen_o we_o affirm_v that_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o herein_o you_o write_v untrue_o for_o first_o if_o your_o church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o doctrine_n or_o government_n thereof_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o there_o be_v such_o diversity_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o that_o the_o one_o be_v find_v the_o chaste_a spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o other_o must_v needs_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o very_a whoar_n of_o babylon_n the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o then_o be_v be_v turn_v among_o you_o into_o a_o pompous_a lordly_a and_o more_o than_o princely_a prelacy_n and_o then_o the_o church_n be_v feed_v with_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o lead_v thereby_o perfect_o to_o understand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o with_o you_o as_o careful_o as_o may_v be_v that_o be_v keep_v from_o she_o and_o in_o steed_n thereof_o she_o be_v feed_v with_o the_o dream_n invention_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n then_o she_o be_v teach_v to_o account_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a name_n whereby_o come_v salvation_n act._n 4._o and_o therefore_o that_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v prepare_v math._n 22._o and_o now_o with_o you_o beside_o he_o saint_n angel_n your_o own_o merit_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o other_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o life_n by_o yourselves_o and_o after_o by_o other_o with_o a_o number_n of_o base_a thing_n must_v join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o office_n of_o intercession_n betwixt_o we_o and_o god_n and_o in_o the_o most_o glorious_a work_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o though_o he_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o go_v perfect_o through_o with_o the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o but_o have_v so_o begin_v it_o as_o that_o the_o accomplish_n and_o perfect_v thereof_o be_v leave_v to_o these_o vain_a and_o foolish_a bymeane_n then_o her_o faithful_a doctor_n and_o teacher_n teach_v she_o that_o christ_n in_o say_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n mean_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n &_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o augustine_n against_o adimantus_n the_o maniche_n cap._n 12._o and_o in_o tertull._n against_o martion_n cap._n 4._o and_o in_o infinite_a place_n elsewhere_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o now_o contrary_a to_o nature_n yea_o to_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n you_o teach_v that_o those_o word_n be_v utter_v by_o your_o priest_n thereupon_o follow_v such_o a_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n that_o whosoever_o receive_v the_o outward_a part_n of_o that_o sacrament_n receive_v in_o by_o his_o mouth_n the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n if_o thus_o i_o be_v dispose_v to_o go_v a_o long_a as_o far_o as_o i_o may_v and_o to_o lead_v the_o reader_n to_o a_o full_a view_n of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v and_o that_o which_o have_v be_v i_o shall_v even_o therewith_o make_v a_o great_a book_n but_o further_a of_o these_o difference_n i_o have_v note_v as_o you_o may_v read_v chapter_n 19_o &_o 20._o and_o else_o where_o in_o this_o book_n and_o doctor_n fulke_n against_o stapletons_n fortress_n have_v note_v out_o of_o bede_n and_o other_o author_n of_o good_a credit_n 50._o difference_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o the_o english_a saxon_n in_o the_o time_n of_o augustine_n the_o monk_n who_o be_v 600._o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o and_o the_o popish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v and_o infinite_a be_v the_o difference_n then_o betwixt_o the_o church_n before_o in_o her_o pu_a time_n and_o the_o popish_a synagogue_n now_o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o you_o brag_v neither_o you_o nor_o all_o your_o fellow_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v indeed_o that_o your_o personal_a succession_n have_v be_v join_v with_o the_o continuance_n of_o one_o and_o selfsame_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n unto_o these_o day_n and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o other_o point_n therein_o i_o say_v you_o write_v untrue_o also_o for_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o we_o grant_v luther_n to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n that_o we_o now_o embrace_v and_o that_o we_o can_v show_v by_o who_o and_o where_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o receive_v before_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a with_o we_o in_o answer_v this_o your_o objection_n of_o newness_n then_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o it_o be_v new_a indeed_o that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a ancient_a religion_n and_o gospel_n teach_v both_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o new_a and_o therefore_o though_o it_o grieve_v you_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v the_o very_a same_o and_o no_o other_o and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o father_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v that_o which_o they_o teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n be_v shepherd_n of_o our_o church_n and_o teacher_n of_o our_o religion_n indeed_o we_o confess_v that_o as_o hilkiah_n the_o priest_n in_o josiahs_n time_n 2._o king_n 22._o find_v the_o book_n of_o god_n and_o be_v so_o a_o mean_n to_o bring_v those_o thing_n to_o light_n that_o by_o the_o wicked_a proceed_n of_o manasses_n amon_n and_o other_o have_v for_o a_o certain_a season_n lie_v hide_v so_o luther_n in_o these_o late_a day_n be_v a_o singular_a instrument_n of_o god_n to_o revive_v and_o bring_v to_o light_v diverse_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o your_o antichristian_a synagogue_n have_v long_o labour_v to_o smother_v and_o hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o hereupon_o it_o no_o more_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o preach_v our_o religion_n then_o upon_o the_o former_a it_o follow_v that_o hilkiah_n be_v then_o first_o the_o
mean_n to_o preach_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o i_o tell_v you_o true_o that_o i_o can_v marvel_v yet_o sufficient_o that_o any_o man_n of_o any_o reason_n judgement_n and_o learning_n as_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v shall_v be_v so_o far_o past_o all_o shame_n as_o confident_o to_o set_v down_o in_o print_n that_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o luther_n 1517._o begin_n first_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n &_o that_o we_o can_v name_v none_o 100_o or_o 200._o year_n before_o that_o teach_v it_o when_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a unless_o your_o ignorance_n be_v very_o gross_a that_o we_o name_n unto_o you_o very_o many_o and_o that_o in_o all_o age_n to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o church_n that_o we_o be_v now_o of_o for_o first_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_a with_o we_o then_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o all_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n prophet_n evangelist_n and_o apostle_n witness_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n live_v and_o die_v in_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o same_o opinion_n we_o tell_v you_o we_o have_v of_o all_o the_o christian_a martyr_n who_o number_n be_v infinite_a that_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n under_o the_o 10._o bloody_a persecution_n that_o be_v in_o that_o time_n for_o during_o that_o time_n our_o religion_n be_v only_o profess_v and_o embrace_v in_o the_o church_n and_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o be_v there_o of_o those_o opinion_n for_o the_o which_o especial_o we_o account_v your_o religion_n antichristian_a unless_o it_o be_v of_o heretic_n and_o such_o as_o have_v learn_v it_o of_o they_o in_o those_o day_n once_o think_v of_o and_o after_o for_o three_o hundred_o year_n more_o at_o least_o in_o all_o the_o most_o substantial_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o great_a question_n betwixt_o we_o and_o you_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o christian_n that_o live_v in_o their_o time_n as_o we_o have_v diverse_a time_n say_v so_o have_v we_o often_o so_o prove_v it_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a therein_o to_o disprove_v we_o be_v full_o we_o and_o though_o after_o these_o time_n when_o boniface_n the_o three_o have_v once_o obtain_v of_o that_o traitorous_a murderer_n phocas_n the_o antichristian_a title_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v every_o day_n work_v more_o plain_o than_o other_o &_o haste_v to_o his_o height_n yet_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o publisher_n preface_n and_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n of_o this_o my_o answer_n to_o yourself_o where_o you_o brag_v again_o as_o you_o do_v here_o of_o 1500._o year_n antiquity_n and_o continuance_n there_o be_v after_o these_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o both_o spy_v the_o growth_n and_o proceed_n thereof_o and_o set_v themselves_o against_o it_o for_o bertram_n &_o johannes_n scotus_n be_v with_o we_o against_o your_o gross_a real_a presence_n above_o 700._o year_n ago_o trithemius_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o book_n write_v 400._o year_n ago_o which_o be_v suppose_v be_v write_v by_o one_o arnulphus_n for_o as_o sabellicus_n and_o platina_n testify_v much_o about_o that_o time_n be_v he_o put_v to_o death_n of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n in_o which_o book_n the_o author_n grievous_o complain_v of_o the_o enormity_n among_o the_o say_v clergy_n and_o find_v many_o fault_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n gisburne_n also_o in_o his_o story_n write_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1158._o dulcinus_n navarensis_n and_o gerrhardus_fw-la preach_v earnest_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o they_o have_v thirty_o follower_n who_o they_o bring_v into_o england_n who_o be_v persecute_v then_o here_o for_o preach_v that_o and_o other_o such_o like_a doctrine_n against_o the_o romish_a church_n much_o about_o this_o time_n but_o somewhat_o rather_o before_o a_o company_n of_o christian_n who_o by_o your_o prelate_n be_v nickenamed_a albigenses_n do_v flourish_v and_o there_o be_v great_a multitude_n of_o they_o even_o about_o tholossa_n whereof_o you_o master_n albine_n be_v call_v archdeacon_n who_o do_v vehement_o resist_v your_o pope_n and_o his_o proceed_n set_v up_o unto_o themselves_o a_o bishop_n who_o they_o call_v bartholomew_n oppugn_v the_o gross_a point_n of_o your_o religion_n even_o as_o we_o do_v witness_n nicolas_n trivet_n and_o other_o in_o their_o story_n hildegarde_n though_o she_o be_v a_o nun_n yet_o in_o the_o year_n 1146._o prophesy_v the_o ruin_n of_o your_o kingdom_n at_o rome_n and_o bitter_o inveigh_v against_o the_o wickedness_n of_o your_o clergy_n and_o friar_n so_o do_v geoffrey_n chaucer_n about_o the_o same_o time_n namely_o in_o his_o dialogue_n call_v jacke_n vpland_n very_o salt_o taunt_v and_o deride_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o frierly_a superstition_n in_o the_o year_n 1164._o be_v petrus_n valdus_n a_o citizen_n of_o lion_n who_o follower_n after_o have_v give_v they_o diverse_a name_n to_o disgrace_v they_o withal_o for_o your_o friend_n call_v they_o waldenses_n albigense_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n picardo_n boslavienses_n thaboritas_fw-la and_o leonistas_n change_v their_o title_n and_o name_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o place_n and_o time_n they_o live_v in_o howsoever_o their_o religion_n be_v all_o one_o and_o these_o have_v be_v of_o ancient_a time_n and_o of_o great_a continuance_n in_o very_a many_o place_n namely_o in_o province_n sarmatia_n lyvonia_n bohemia_n moravia_n polonia_n silesia_n belgia_n and_o in_o calabria_n and_o of_o you_o wheresoever_o or_o whensoever_o they_o be_v they_o have_v be_v cruel_o persecute_v for_o heretic_n and_o yet_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v judge_v of_o not_o as_o you_o the_o more_o to_o disgrace_v they_o have_v charge_v they_o but_o as_o they_o in_o their_o own_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o apology_n have_v set_v they_o down_o they_o in_o many_o thing_n hold_v the_o very_a same_o that_o we_o do_v and_o condemn_v the_o same_o for_o error_n in_o you_o that_o we_o now_o do_v they_o be_v of_o 400._o year_n continuance_n at_o least_o for_o aeneas_n silvius_n a_o man_n of_o your_o own_o for_o he_o be_v pope_n ere_o he_o die_v write_v handle_v the_o story_n of_o boeme_n that_o they_o have_v continue_v unto_o his_o time_n from_o the_o year_n 1160._o and_o gulielmus_fw-la paruus_fw-la write_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v examine_v in_o oxford_n and_o find_v sound_n concern_v god_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n for_o your_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o iorn_v of_o our_o own_o merit_n with_o christ_n to_o make_v up_o full_a satisfaction_n and_o redemption_n be_v of_o far_o late_a invention_n and_o their_o life_n say_v he_o be_v commendable_a but_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v find_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yea_o reinerus_n a_o writer_n 300._o year_n ago_o who_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v be_v often_o at_o the_o examination_n of_o they_o in_o his_o book_n of_o inquisition_n write_v of_o they_o calling_z they_o leonist_n confess_v that_o some_o say_v they_o have_v continue_v from_o syluester_n time_n and_o that_o some_o say_v they_o have_v be_v even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o he_o further_o report_n that_o they_o have_v great_a show_n of_o holy_a life_n in_o live_v just_o before_o man_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o he_o charge_v they_o that_o they_o hate_v &_o blaspheme_v the_o romish_a church_n and_o this_o he_o further_o write_v that_o there_o be_v no_o land_n wherein_o that_o sect_n do_v not_o creep_v &_o speak_v but_o of_o they_o that_o be_v they_o but_o in_o one_o country_n yet_o this_o he_o testify_v that_o they_o have_v there_o ten_o school_n in_o one_o parish_n call_v camach_n that_o there_o be_v forty_o congregation_n or_o church_n of_o they_o every_o one_o have_v their_o leader_n or_o teacher_n and_o that_o their_o power_n in_o his_o time_n be_v such_o that_o none_o as_o he_o say_v dare_v then_o open_o resist_v they_o there_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v see_v as_o good_a author_n report_n the_o consultation_n and_o record_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o four_o great_a bishop_n in_o france_n against_o they_o write_v three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o namely_o of_o narbonensis_n arelatensis_fw-la aquensis_n and_o albanensis_fw-la yea_o 355._o year_n ago_o i_o read_v there_o be_v a_o council_n keep_v in_o tholossa_n especial_o against_o they_o and_o yet_o though_o both_o of_o ancient_a time_n and_o late_a day_n the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n have_v seek_v to_o root_v they_o out_o by_o all_o possible_a cruelty_n they_o and_o their_o successor_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n in_o great_a number_n in_o bohemia_n and_o in_o other_o place_n but_o because_o you_o very_o
hundred_o year_n have_v be_v at_o contention_n &_o yet_o doubtless_o be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n whither_o it_o be_v in_o sin_n or_o no_o &_o about_o diverse_a &_o sundry_a other_o great_a mystery_n of_o their_o religion_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v at_o great_a unity_n yet_o if_o a_o man_n be_v dispose_v to_o note_v the_o diverse_a opinion_n therein_o among_o themselves_o he_o shall_v scarce_o ever_o know_v when_o to_o make_v a_o end_n for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o hold_v that_o there_o christ_n body_n be_v tear_v and_o chew_v with_o the_o tooth_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o recantation_n that_o they_o prescribe_v to_o beringarius_n other_o as_o guymund_n de_fw-fr consecra_fw-la dist_n 2._o think_v that_o too_o gross_a some_o as_o gardener_n will_v have_v hoc_fw-la to_o signify_v individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la a_o certain_a thing_n that_o be_v but_o they_o can_v tell_v what_o other_o now_o will_v have_v it_o to_o note_v that_o which_o be_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n scotus_n and_o innocentius_n the_o four_o hold_v consecration_n to_o be_v not_o by_o the_o five_o word_n but_o by_o christ_n blessing_n other_o hold_v now_o that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o five_o word_n when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o eat_n some_o hold_n that_o it_o enter_v the_o mouth_n but_o no_o further_o other_o will_n have_v it_o to_o pass_v into_o the_o stomach_n but_o not_o into_o the_o gut_n other_o will_v have_v it_o to_o go_v thither_o also_o infinite_a be_v the_o question_n that_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o about_o this_o matter_n and_o in_o their_o last_o conventicle_n at_o trident_n where_o they_o have_v hope_v to_o have_v heal_v all_o these_o sore_n yet_o even_o then_o there_o grow_v a_o great_a contention_n betwixt_o two_o great_a captain_n of_o they_o archbishop_n catharinus_n and_o friar_n soto_n and_o that_o about_o no_o small_a matter_n namely_o about_o assure_a confidence_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n predestination_n original_a sin_n freewill_n and_o such_o like_a matter_n insomuch_o that_o for_o all_o the_o council_n can_v do_v for_o six_o year_n together_o they_o continual_o go_v on_o in_o write_v book_n bitter_o one_o against_o another_o the_o same_o catharin_n also_o write_v a_o book_n against_o caietan_n a_o cardinal_n lay_v therein_o to_o his_o charge_n 200._o error_n contention_n also_o the_o same_o catharin_n have_v with_o franciscus_n torrensis_n a_o man_n otherwise_o of_o his_o own_o faction_n about_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n &_o residence_n of_o bishop_n both_o which_o the_o one_o hold_v be_v as_o he_o teach_v therein_o warrant_v by_o god_n word_n the_o other_o stout_o hold_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n free_a grace_n and_o original_a sin_n ruard_v tapper_n a_o great_a papist_n and_o deane_n of_o colen_n in_o his_o second_o tome_n write_v against_o piggius_n a_o archpiller_n of_o that_o synagogue_n contend_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v deceive_v and_o err_v in_o those_o point_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o contention_n and_o controversy_n that_o be_v among_o they_o for_o certain_a it_o be_v they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o infinite_a that_o a_o man_n if_o he_o be_v dispose_v may_v write_v a_o book_n of_o a_o whole_a choir_n of_o paper_n consist_v only_o of_o a_o bare_a recital_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n that_o their_o writer_n have_v set_v down_o in_o their_o own_o book_n about_o point_n and_o question_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o see_v as_o though_o there_o never_o have_v be_v jar_n among_o they_o they_o brag_v of_o unity_n among_o the_o simple_a and_o labour_v our_o disgrace_n with_o the_o objection_n of_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o we_o especial_o about_o this_o one_o point_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o see_v now_o hereby_o in_o part_n you_o see_v at_o what_o agreement_n they_o be_v i_o hope_v you_o think_v it_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v agree_v better_o amongst_o themselves_o before_o they_o insult_v any_o more_o against_o we_o for_o our_o disagreement_n last_o they_o do_v we_o wrong_n in_o seek_v to_o disgrace_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n in_o that_o since_o luther_n begin_v to_o preach_v there_o have_v rise_v up_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a fond_a and_o foolish_a heretic_n for_o we_o read_v that_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n even_o within_o few_o year_n epiphanius_n by_o his_o time_n can_v reckon_v up_o eighty_o and_o augustine_n more_o several_a error_n and_o heresy_n which_o in_o effect_n do_v grow_v together_o with_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v blame_v therefore_o but_o satan_n who_o where_o the_o good_a seedsman_n sow_v good_a seed_n use_v to_o sow_v also_o his_o tare_n matthew_n the_o thirteen_o and_o yet_o it_o seem_v by_o saint_n johns_n prevention_n of_o this_o objection_n that_o some_o aswell_o affect_v to_o the_o gospel_n then_o belike_o as_o you_o be_v now_o be_v ready_a hereby_o to_o discredit_v both_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o doctrine_n but_o johns_n answer_n be_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v with_o us._n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o we_o 1._o john_n 3._o even_o so_o we_o answer_v you_o concern_v those_o that_o you_o say_v have_v any_o where_n since_o luther_n rise_v among_o we_o and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n yet_o further_o so_o much_o the_o more_o apparent_a be_v the_o wrong_n that_o you_o offer_v we_o in_o this_o behalf_n in_o that_o not_o only_o you_o know_v we_o shun_v communion_n with_o they_o as_o well_o as_o you_o but_o that_o also_o it_o evident_o have_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o the_o forward_a in_o detect_v of_o they_o and_o in_o confute_v of_o they_o from_o time_n to_o time_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o hitherto_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o of_o any_o force_n for_o the_o justification_n either_o of_o your_o vocation_n church_n or_o religion_n the_o v._o chapter_n the_o like_a unto_o this_o be_v confirm_v by_o vincensius_fw-la lyrinensis_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o book_n above_o name_v that_o that_o person_n ought_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o true_a catholic_a antiquity_n catholic_a this_o rule_n be_v sound_a and_o good_a but_o it_o quite_o overthrow_v popery_n because_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v this_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n for_o ●he_v contrary_a be_v certain_a both_o by_o scripture_n and_o all_o sound_a antiquity_n that_o have_v nothing_o in_o great_a commendation_n than_o the_o true_a religion_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n yea_o although_o it_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o great_a philosopher_n and_o the_o fair_a speaker_n that_o ever_o be_v if_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v against_o the_o old_a doctrine_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o of_o our_o forefather_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n we_o ought_v say_v he_o to_o disdain_v that_o learned_a clerk_n with_o all_o his_o philosophy_n &_o cunning_a &_o to_o hold_v ourselves_o to_o the_o ancient_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o have_v continue_v until_o this_o present_a day_n religion_n day_n but_o such_o as_o all_o popery_n and_o no_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o if_o that_o now_o one_o shall_v bring_v a_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o contrary_a unto_o that_o that_o have_v ever_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n say_v that_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o the_o state_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o that_o it_o be_v no_o religion_n but_o a_o temptation_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v we_o ought_v to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o faith_n that_o have_v continue_v by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n even_o from_o christ_n time_n unto_o these_o day_n s._n irenaeus_n a_o very_a famous_a writer_n 65._o lib._n 4._o contr_n haer_fw-mi cap._n 65._o in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o heresy_n the_o 65._o chapter_n who_o be_v within_o a_o few_o year_n of_o the_o apostle_n archbishop_n of_o lion_n write_v the_o very_a like_a impossible_a like_a prove_v your_o religion_n now_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v in_o irenaeus_n time_n and_o then_o you_o say_v something_o &_o his_o testimony_n make_v for_o you_o otherwise_o not_o and_o this_o be_v impossible_a say_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o ancient_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n
never_o have_v prove_v either_o of_o these_o nor_o yet_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o you_o shall_v conclude_v that_o your_o prescription_n against_o our_o doctrine_n which_o you_o call_v new_a at_o your_o pleasure_n though_o indeed_o it_o be_v most_o ancient_a witness_v the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a much_o rather_o ought_v to_o take_v place_n then_z his_o in_o his_o time_n against_o heretic_n that_o then_o teach_v diverse_a basphemous_a heresy_n direct_o against_o the_o scripture_n you_o say_v our_o religion_n have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a pernicious_a heretic_n but_o you_o do_v but_o say_v thus_o you_o prove_v it_o not_o nor_o ever_o shall_v for_o it_o be_v both_o hear_v and_o know_v many_o 100_o year_n before_o you_o be_v hatch_v and_o if_o every_o one_o be_v so_o condemn_v that_o teach_v it_o than_o be_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n so_o condemn_v for_o unless_o by_o scripture_n we_o can_v prove_v we_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v we_o ask_v no_o favour_n at_o your_o hand_n and_o as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v do_v so_o the_o more_o we_o and_o our_o predecessor_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o you_o the_o more_o we_o know_v we_o have_v be_v bless_v of_o god_n now_o whereas_o you_o say_v in_o this_o chapter_n further_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v withstand_v heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n add_v your_o gloss_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n and_o so_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o time_n therein_o through_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n tradition_n crafts_o you_o seek_v to_o deceive_v your_o simple_a reader_n and_o indeed_o you_o give_v a_o gloss_n that_o corrupteeh_a the_o text_n for_o let_v that_o place_n of_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n be_v peruse_v and_o that_o also_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n though_o either_o you_o or_o the_o printer_n mistake_v it_o send_v we_o to_o the_o five_o chapter_n where_o the_o word_n be_v not_o which_o you_o cite_v and_o most_o evident_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o though_o irenaeus_n have_v there_o the_o word_n by_o you_o cite_v yet_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o he_o mean_v no_o doctrine_n nor_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o you_o do_v usual_o by_o that_o word_n contrary_a or_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v also_o teach_v in_o the_o word_n write_v for_o the_o question_n be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o valentinian_n &_o martion_n deny_v against_o who_o he_o there_o show_v that_o he_o fight_v first_o with_o the_o scripture_n wherewith_o when_o they_o be_v urge_v he_o say_v they_o be_v turn_v straight_o into_o a_o accusation_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o though_o they_o be_v not_o right_a have_v not_o authority_n may_v diverse_o be_v take_v say_v further_o that_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v of_o they_o by_o those_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o tradition_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o they_o but_o by_o lively_a voice_n &_o that_o therefore_o paul_n say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a not_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n and_o this_o wisdom_n to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o say_v he_o be_v that_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v devise_v of_o which_o heretic_n their_o word_n &_o you_o when_o you_o be_v call_v to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o like_a undoubted_o you_o have_v learned_a to_o plead_v against_o the_o scripture_n for_o your_o unwritten_a tradition_n now_o when_o thus_o he_o have_v show_v how_o the_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n shun_v trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o appeal_v to_o tradition_n he_o go_v on_o and_o show_v that_o when_o he_o be_v content_v to_o come_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n keep_v &_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o those_o time_n by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n than_o they_o resist_v tradition_n also_o say_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a then_o either_o those_o pastor_n or_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o so_o indeed_o neither_o by_o the_o scripture_n nor_o yet_o by_o make_v demonstration_n unto_o they_o that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v also_o deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n first_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o continue_v in_o by_o those_o pastor_n of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v can_v stop_v their_o mouth_n and_o thus_o any_o man_n of_o mean_a capacity_n may_v perceive_v that_o in_o these_o place_n irenaeus_n his_o drift_n only_o be_v to_o show_v the_o heretic_n that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v concern_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n first_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n and_o then_o also_o teach_v by_o they_o by_o lively_a voice_n and_o so_o deliver_v and_o continue_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n among_o the_o faithful_a pastor_n succeed_v one_o another_o even_o unto_o that_o time_n and_o that_o he_o call_v this_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o as_o you_o false_o expound_v he_o doctrine_n unwriten_a beside_o or_o contrary_n to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v as_o the_o popish_a tradition_n you_o strive_v for_o be_v if_o you_o have_v be_v dispose_v you_o may_v have_v learn_v in_o the_o 1._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n where_o he_o say_v that_o which_o first_o they_o preach_v after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n tradiderunt_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o deliver_v we_o in_o writing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n often_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o understand_v the_o very_a same_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o their_o writing_n herein_o therefore_o &_o so_o likewise_o in_o all_o other_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o it_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n with_o you_o papist_n to_o urge_v the_o father_n word_n quite_o contrary_a to_o their_o true_a meaning_n but_o because_o you_o first_o and_o namely_o bring_v in_o irenaeus_n for_o your_o unwriten_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o window_n indeed_o that_o you_o will_v have_v fain_o leave_v open_a unto_o you_o for_o then_o thereby_o you_o hope_v you_o may_v thrust_v in_o and_o upon_o the_o church_n what_o you_o listen_v and_o so_o countenance_n thereby_o your_o antichristian_a doctrine_n when_o all_o other_o shift_n fail_v let_v we_o see_v whither_o this_o can_v yet_o further_o be_v make_v manifest_a out_o of_o he_o he_o as_o eusebius_n report_v hist_n eccles_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o say_v that_o polycarpe_n teach_v that_o one_o and_o sole_a truth_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o apostle_n quae_fw-la &_o ecclesia_fw-la tradit_fw-la which_o the_o church_n deliver_v forth_o where_o of_o necessity_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n that_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o you_o may_v not_o understand_v any_o other_o but_o those_o which_o have_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n write_v and_o in_o no_o case_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v beside_o that_o or_o contrary_n thereunto_o for_o then_o he_o will_v not_o have_v call_v that_o which_o polycarpe_n preach_v the_o one_o and_o sole_a truth_n for_o questionless_a those_o thing_n be_v true_a that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o clear_o appear_v if_o you_o mark_v the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o irenaeus_n himself_o in_o his_o 5._o book_n &_o 20._o cap._n that_o eusebius_n have_v relation_n unto_o which_o be_v these_o polycarpe_n do_v mention_v or_o teach_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v all_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n again_o the_o same_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 3._o cap._n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chapter_n by_o you_o before_o allege_v say_v that_o under_o clement_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n wrought_v to_o the_o corinthian_n show_v they_o quam_fw-la traditionem_fw-la what_o tradition_n of_o late_a they_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a and_o so_o forth_o as_o be_v express_v in_o moses_n be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v so_o teach_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o they_o that_o will_v learn_v may_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o apostolic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o he_o tell_v we_o himself_o
that_o by_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n he_o understand_v this_o same_o doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n which_o before_o they_o write_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o lively_a voice_n &_o afterward_o as_o it_o appear_v they_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n be_v this_o they_o honest_a deal_n in_o you_o to_o make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o mean_v of_o unwriten_a doctrine_n such_o as_o the_o be_v for_o which_o you_o &_o we_o strive_v see_v he_o tell_v you_o himself_o that_o by_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n you_o be_v to_o understand_v this_o doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n most_o plain_o &_o plentiful_o write_v and_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n you_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o s._n paul_n 2._o thes_n 2.15_o that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tradition_n may_v as_o well_o be_v refer_v to_o express_v doctrine_n in_o scripture_n as_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n where_o the_o apostle_n as_o then_o very_a little_a of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v and_o as_o then_o therefore_o the_o whole_a apostolic_a doctrine_n therein_o not_o be_v express_v say_v hold_v fast_o brethren_n the_o document_n deliver_v you_o whither_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n but_o you_o be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v blame_v &_o the_o more_o to_o be_v bear_v withal_o for_o this_o your_o wilful_a thus_o abuse_v your_o reader_n because_o the_o make_n or_o mar_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n stand_v upon_o unwriten_a verity_n or_o rather_o forgery_n which_o you_o call_v the_o apostolic_a or_o the_o holy_a church_n tradition_n for_o there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o of_o those_o point_n of_o religion_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o you_o and_o strive_v with_o you_o about_o but_o your_o own_o great_a champion_n have_v confess_v have_v their_o ground_n from_o hence_o and_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n as_o any_o man_n that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v they_o may_v see_v in_o peter_n soto_n against_o brentius_n in_o the_o 5._o cap._n of_o canisius_n catechism_n &_o in_o the_o 5._o book_n &_o 100_o c._n of_o lindans_fw-la panoply_n where_o they_o reckon_v up_o almost_o all_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o in_o religion_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v plain_o confess_v the_o ground_n thereof_o to_o be_v but_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o to_o countenance_v this_o only_a bulwark_n of_o your_o church_n &_o religion_n at_o least_o with_o those_o that_o either_o for_o lack_n of_o leisure_n or_o learning_n can_v examine_v your_o quotation_n it_o be_v not_o your_o fault_n here_o alone_o but_o the_o common_a fault_n of_o you_o all_o where_o you_o find_v any_o mention_n in_o father_n of_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o evident_a that_o thereby_o they_o mean_v nothing_o beside_o that_o which_o also_o have_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n write_v to_o allege_v that_o place_n straight_o to_o countenance_v your_o unwriten_a tradition_n to_o prevent_v you_o therefore_o hereafter_o of_o thus_o abuse_v the_o simple_a i_o will_v wish_v they_o &_o all_o other_o to_o mark_v how_o flat_o against_o your_o unwriten_a &_o unwaranted_a tradition_n by_o the_o write_v word_n the_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n have_v write_v for_o the_o absolute_a sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n beside_o that_o which_o you_o herd_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n &_o tertullian_n to_o this_o purpose_n irenaeus_n say_v further_a in_o his_o five_o book_n we_o must_v run_v to_o the_o church_n &_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o her_o boatswain_n &_o nourish_v with_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n and_o tert_n against_o hermog_n write_v let_v hermogenes_n show_v that_o it_o be_v write_v if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v he_o fear_v that_o woe_n that_o be_v threaten_v or_o appoint_v to_o the_o adder_n or_o taker_n away_o as_o for_o origen_n we_o have_v hear_v he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o our_o sense_n and_o declaration_n without_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v no_o credit_n in_o he_o 1._o hom._n upon_o jerem._n and_o great_a and_o worthy_a athanasius_n say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o truth_n against_o idol_n hilary_n say_v it_o be_v well_o that_o we_o be_v content_a with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n cyrill_n upon_o john_n in_o his_o 12._o book_n and_o 68_o cap._n grant_v indeed_o that_o all_o thing_n that_o christ_n do_v be_v not_o write_v but_o he_o say_v those_o thing_n be_v write_v which_o the_o writer_n think_v sufficient_a both_o for_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n chrysostome_n write_v upon_o the_o 2._o to_o timothy_n homil._n 9_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n needful_a either_o to_o learn_v or_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o shall_v learn_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o matth._n common_o also_o father_v upon_o chrysostome_n we_o read_v these_o golden_a word_n they_o that_o be_v in_o christianity_n let_v they_o flee_v to_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o proof_n of_o christianity_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o end_n read_v also_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 2_o to_o the_o thes_n hom._n 3._o basil_n also_o very_o sharp_o write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o evident_a argument_n of_o infidelity_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o pride_n if_o any_o man_n either_o do_v reject_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o which_o be_v write_v or_o bring_v any_o thing_n not_o write_v see_v the_o lord_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o true_a and_o godly_a faith_n where_o also_o he_o note_v that_o paul_n galat._n 3._o by_o a_o example_n take_v from_o man_n most_o vehement_o forbid_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n or_o which_o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o be_v add_v thereunto_o and_o therefore_o he_o in_o moral_a reg._n 26._o say_v further_a whatsoever_o we_o say_v or_o do_v it_o must_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o likewise_o in_o his_o 80_o rule_n he_o gather_v that_o see_v faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o doubt_n whatsoever_o be_v without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v it_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o add_v in_o that_o rule_n let_v we_o stand_v to_o the_o arbitrament_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o with_o who_o doctrine_n be_v find_v consonant_n thereunto_o let_v the_o sentence_n of_o all_o truth_n be_v adjudge_v of_o their_o side_n hierome_n upon_o agge_n cap._n 1._o say_v those_o thing_n which_o of_o their_o own_o head_n they_o devise_v as_o though_o they_o come_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n strike_v who_o also_o upon_o math._n cap._n 23._o say_v that_o which_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o easy_o be_v despise_v as_o approve_v and_o contra_fw-la heluidium_fw-la he_o say_v we_o believe_v it_o because_o we_o read_v it_o and_o we_o believe_v it_o not_o because_o we_o read_v it_o not_o august_n against_o cresconins_n the_o grammarian_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n write_v that_o there_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n ordain_v whereunto_o belong_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o which_o book_n we_o judge_v of_o all_o other_o writing_n both_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o the_o infidel_n out_o of_o who_o already_o we_o have_v hear_v diverse_a plain_a testimony_n to_o this_o purpose_n especial_o that_o against_o petilian_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 6._o cap._n set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o 3._o chap_n damascen_n be_v as_o plain_a as_o any_o of_o these_o in_o his_o 1_o book_n of_o right_a faith_n cap._n 1._o cuncta_fw-la quae_fw-la tradit_fw-la a_o sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o be_v deliver_v we_o by_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n we_o embrace_v we_o acknowledge_v &_o reverence_v beyond_o those_o seek_v no_o further_o for_o all_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n he_o confess_v be_v plain_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o doct_n christ_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 9_o infinite_a such_o place_n may_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o they_o be_v full_a of_o they_o whereby_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o uniform_a and_o general_a judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o they_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o therefore_o in_o deed_n and_o truth_n you_o make_v any_o reckon_n of_o their_o general_a consent_n as_o often_o time_n you_o will_v
but_o especial_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v direct_o contrary_a in_o a_o multitude_n of_o most_o material_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o show_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o this_o book_n we_o have_v as_o we_o be_v counsel_v apocal._n 18_o separate_a ourselves_o from_o you_o and_o they_o lest_o by_o hold_v society_n with_o you_o in_o these_o your_o sin_n we_o shall_v in_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n have_v be_v drive_v also_o in_o the_o end_n to_o be_v partaker_n with_o you_o in_o your_o plague_n and_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n though_o you_o brag_v that_o you_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o quiet_a your_o conscience_n withal_o that_o you_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n that_o your_o pastor_n &_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v teach_v you_o 1500._o year_n and_o that_o their_o ill_a life_n can_v hurt_v you_o yet_o in_o deed_n and_o truth_n you_o have_v neither_o of_o both_o for_o your_o ill_a life_n be_v join_v with_o ill_a doctrine_n have_v bereave_v you_o of_o both_o &_o so_o you_o have_v have_v nether_a the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o particular_a synagogue_n of_o your_o own_o nor_o any_o sound_n or_o good_a pastor_n either_o for_o life_n or_o religion_n these_o 600_o or_o 700_o year_n to_o teach_v you_o your_o faith_n the_o x._o chapter_n now_o to_o turn_v unto_o the_o take_n of_o your_o account_n may_v it_o please_v you_o to_o show_v we_o how_o you_o have_v follow_v the_o step_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n that_o we_o give_v to_o his_o reasonable_a sheep_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o who_o have_v teach_v you_o the_o way_n that_o you_o do_v follow_v what_o doctor_n be_v your_o first_o tutor_n who_o have_v teach_v you_o that_o the_o precious_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n who_o have_v teach_v the_o doctrine_n or_o if_o it_o be_v not_o grief_n unto_o you_o heresy_n which_o you_o will_v have_v we_o to_o receive_v as_o a_o gospel_n i_o know_v before_o hand_n that_o you_o will_v allege_v i_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o holy_a apostle_n who_o step_n you_o do_v profess_v to_o follow_v preach_v every_o where_n that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o your_o church_n or_o to_o say_v truth_n synagogue_n &_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o i_o pray_v let_v i_o understand_v by_o what_o mean_v you_o can_v join_v yourselves_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n see_v that_o untruth_n that_o this_o be_v a_o impudent_a untruth_n you_o condemn_v &_o cut_v off_o all_o the_o christian_n that_o have_v be_v &_o be_v between_o you_o &_o they_o for_o to_o verify_v this_o i_o will_v allege_v no_o other_o but_o your_o own_o work_n for_o caluin_n in_o his_o institution_n at_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v in_o old_a time_n he_o do_v write_v punctuallie_o these_o word_n caluinus_n in_fw-la suâ_fw-la institutione_n traditâ_fw-la de_fw-la coenâ_fw-la domini_fw-la i_o find_v say_v he_o that_o those_o of_o old_a time_n have_v change_v this_o fashion_n otherwise_o then_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v require_v see_v that_o their_o supper_n do_v represent_v a_o certain_a spectacle_n of_o a_o strange_a invention_n or_o at_o the_o least_o of_o a_o new_a manner_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o sure_a unto_o the_o faithful_a they_o for_o they_o to_o hold_v themselves_o unto_o the_o pure_a ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o who_o it_o be_v call_v a_o supper_n to_o the_o end_n that_o only_o his_o authority_n may_v be_v our_o rule_n yet_o it_o be_v true_a that_o when_o i_o consider_v their_o good_a meaning_n and_o that_o their_o intent_n be_v never_o to_o derogate_v from_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n i_o dare_v not_o condenne_v they_o of_o folly_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v that_o one_o can_v excuse_v they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o somewhat_o fail_v in_o the_o exterior_a form_n for_o they_o have_v follow_v more_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n them_z the_o order_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v permit_v and_o this_o be_v the_o point_n in_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v resist_v for_o they_o have_v conform_v to_o much_o unto_o the_o old_a testament_n not_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o simple_a institution_n of_o christ_n they_o have_v to_o much_o incline_v themselves_o unto_o the_o shadow_a ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n law_n these_o be_v caluin_n word_n the_o reader_n may_v by_o they_o see_v well_o how_o this_o noble_a reformer_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v correct_v all_o age_n and_o church_n be_v they_o of_o martyr_n confessor_n doctor_n interpreter_n preacher_n or_o any_o other_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o our_o age_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o deny_v but_o that_o have_v some_o regard_n of_o their_o simple_a ignorance_n he_o be_v content_a to_o be_v so_o good_a to_o they_o as_o for_o this_o time_n not_o to_o condemn_v their_o error_n or_o impiety_n because_o that_o which_o they_o do_v be_v with_o a_o good_a intent_n but_o yet_o fear_v that_o the_o bear_v they_o to_o much_o favour_n will_v trouble_v his_o conscience_n he_o give_v sentence_n against_o they_o say_v that_o he_o that_o yet_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o for_o the_o which_o you_o allege_v he_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v resist_v because_o they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o only_a institution_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o that_o in_o this_o case_n they_o have_v follow_v the_o shadow_n of_o the_o jew_n now_o for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v caluin_n &_o his_o fellow_n so_o scrupulous_a that_o they_o will_v not_o join_v themselves_o unto_o person_n that_o be_v spot_v with_o jewish_a ceremony_n time_n ceremony_n be_v you_o not_o ashamed_a thus_o to_o bely_v he_o be_v it_o not_o evident_a in_o his_o word_n that_o he_o speak_v but_o only_o of_o some_o in_o old_a time_n and_o because_o that_o all_o manner_n of_o people_n how_o wise_a soever_o they_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o our_o day_n have_v fall_v into_o this_o error_n he_o do_v counsel_n my_o master_n his_o deform_a follower_n according_a to_o his_o sentence_n to_o follow_v none_o of_o they_o at_o all_o but_o only_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n preach_v by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o his_o above_n mention_v apostle_n the_o x._o chapter_n in_o that_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v our_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o diverse_a time_n have_v call_v upon_o you_o to_o come_v to_o that_o trial_n and_o yet_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n bring_v you_o unto_o it_o &_o that_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o that_o doctrine_n therein_o warrant_v have_v always_o by_o god_n by_o the_o mean_v he_o have_v appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n be_v preserve_v and_o continue_v in_o his_o church_n you_o return_v now_o again_o to_o take_v account_n of_o we_o how_o we_o have_v follow_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n sheep_n that_o go_v before_o we_o &_o feed_v by_o the_o tent_n of_o his_o shepherd_n be_v answer_v and_o yet_o for_o your_o better_a and_o more_o plain_a satisfy_n who_o have_v teach_v we_o the_o way_n that_o we_o follow_v &_o who_o be_v the_o doctor_n that_o be_v ou●_n first_o tutor_n we_o answer_v you_o that_o christ_n his_o apostle_n &_o euamgelist_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v our_o first_o tutor_n &_o since_o they_o in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n the_o aucient_a father_n who_o name_n and_o monument_n be_v know_v unto_o the_o church_n that_o live_v for_o 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n &_o those_o that_o i_o name_v unto_o you_o before_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o 4_o chapter_n but_o particular_o you_o will_v know_v of_o we_o who_o have_v teach_v we_o to_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n here_o i_o suppose_v you_o mean_v by_o real_a presence_n that_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v in_o this_o case_n now_o teach_v and_o receive_v in_o your_o church_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o receiver_n be_v they_o faithful_a or_o faithless_a for_o otherwise_o none_o of_o we_o do_v deny_v a_o true_a and_o most_o certain_a presence_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o right_a receiver_n this_o them_z be_v your_o meaning_n we_o do_v not_o only_o as_o you_o suppose_v answer_v you_o that_o we_o have_v learn_v of_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n to_o deny_v it_o but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o credit_n &_o account_v in_o the_o church_n for_o 700_o or_o 800_o year_n together_o &_o since_o we_o have_v be_v continue_v in_o the_o same_o
minister_n of_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n and_o no_o marvel_n that_o they_o that_o be_v not_o light_v head_v send_v we_o to_o preach_v in_o new_a find_v land_n etc._n etc._n this_o in_o effect_n you_o have_v often_o say_v and_o if_o that_o will_v serve_v you_o will_v not_o stick_v with_o we_o to_o say_v it_o in_o every_o chapter_n but_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o question_n whereupon_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o whole_a controversy_n betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o depend_v namely_o whither_o our_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o true_a ancient_a religion_n teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o you_o to_o pass_v it_o over_o thus_o with_o bare_a word_n and_o never_o to_o go_v about_o sound_o to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o be_v but_o too_o too_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a well_o may_v you_o in_o your_o own_o conceit_n and_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o simple_a silly_a reader_n seem_v herein_o to_o have_v do_v a_o great_a act_n but_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o of_o mean_a wit_n &_o capacity_n howsoever_o you_o may_v be_v count_v a_o wordy_a man_n yet_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v account_v a_o worthy_a champion_n to_o fight_v in_o this_o great_a question_n only_o with_o bare_a word_n the_o xv._o chapter_n you_o will_v say_v to_o i_o that_o this_o argument_n ought_v to_o take_v place_n in_o a_o ordinary_a commission_n but_o man_n but_o though_o in_o such_o time_n &_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o luther_n and_o some_o other_o live_v there_o be_v just_a occasion_n why_o god_n shall_v stir_v up_o man_n extraordinary_o to_o serve_v he_o yet_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o both_o he_o and_o other_o who_o calling_n you_o most_o call_v in_o question_n be_v not_o without_o a_o ordinary_a outward_a call_n of_o man_n you_o be_v extraordinary_a as_o that_o be_v of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n who_o god_n do_v send_v to_o correct_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n and_o that_o even_o so_o god_n have_v inspire_v you_o and_o other_o of_o your_o sect_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o correct_v the_o superstitious_a life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n idolater_n and_o by_o this_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v see_v you_o be_v commissary_n of_o god_n in_o his_o behalf_n &_o you_o may_v say_v well_o with_o s._n paul_n although_o you_o have_v not_o be_v ravish_v unto_o the_o three_o heaven_n 1._o heaven_n gal._n 1._o that_o you_o be_v not_o send_v by_o man_n or_o of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o what_o will_v you_o say_v if_o we_o shall_v speak_v against_o it_o as_o a_o number_n do_v and_o that_o to_o revenge_v this_o quarrel_n we_o shall_v write_v against_o your_o commission_n we_o may_v well_o aid_v ourselves_o with_o a_o sillogisme_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n if_o we_o will_v come_v to_o plead_v the_o matter_n which_o be_v this_o god_n this_o this_o argument_n the_o contrariety_n betwixt_o your_o religion_n &_o christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v prove_v neither_o your_o church_n nor_o priest_n to_o be_v of_o god_n he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n do_v obey_v 6._o obey_v joh._n 6._o say_v 6._o john_n the_o eight_o you_o will_v have_v say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o you_o do_v not_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n i_o know_v that_o you_o will_v deny_v the_o minor_a and_o therefore_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o we_o to_o prove_v it_o christ_n do_v say_v 22._o say_v mat._n 22._o you_o 22._o in_o this_o particular_a respect_n witness_v your_o pope_n usurp_v over_o christian_a prince_n none_o be_v ever_o more_o ●uil●y_o in_o deny_v to_o cesar_n that_o which_o be_v caesar_n than_o you_o give_v unto_o cesar_n that_o that_o appertain_v to_o cesar_n and_o to_o god_n that_o that_o appertain_v to_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o speak_v familierlie_o give_v geneva_n unto_o his_o lord_n and_o the_o bishopric_n unto_o his_o bishop_n now_o you_o do_v not_o obey_v this_o commandment_n &_o therefore_o as_o one_o that_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o god_n you_o have_v provide_v yourself_o a_o new_a master_n and_o because_o we_o will_v not_o have_v some_o to_o think_v that_o we_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o country_n do_v bear_v false_a witness_n against_o you_o or_o that_o we_o do_v it_o without_o have_v any_o interest_n unto_o the_o matter_n rebellion_n matter_n nay_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n show_v that_o your_o own_o savage_a deal_n contrary_a to_o the_o public_a edict_n of_o that_o country_n have_v cause_v the_o st●rs_n there_o and_o now_o of_o late_o you_o have_v reviue_v they_o by_o open_a treason_n and_o rebellion_n i_o be_o sure_a that_o all_o the_o world_n do_v know_v that_o you_o have_v set_v all_o france_n in_o as_o ill_a a_o estate_n as_o you_o have_v do_v the_o dukedom_n of_o savoy_n in_o that_o that_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n be_v there_o any_o bishopric_n or_o diocese_n leave_v where_o you_o have_v not_o seek_v with_o all_o your_o power_n to_o preach_v your_o holy_a doctrine_n where_o have_v you_o forget_v that_o that_o saint_n paul_n do_v say_v which_o be_v 10._o be_v rom._n 10._o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v if_o they_o be_v not_o send_v what_o right_a have_v you_o to_o come_v to_o reap_v other_o man_n corn_n do_v not_o you_o remember_v that_o that_o tertullian_n do_v write_v against_o your_o elder_n that_o do_v persecute_v the_o catholic_a church_n against_o who_o he_o say_v in_o his_o day_n his_o this_o tertullian_n will_v sure_o have_v say_v of_o you_o ●_o he_o have_v live_v in_o these_o day_n book_n the_o praescriptione_n haereticorum_fw-la what_o be_v you_o and_o from_o whence_o do_v you_o come_v by_o what_o right_a o_o marcian_n do_v thou_o cut_v down_o my_o wood_n why_o do_v thou_o o_o appelles_n remove_v my_o land_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v the_o place_n be_v i_o i_o have_v be_v thus_o long_a time_n in_o possession_n and_o before_o thou_o i_o have_v good_a title_n and_o evidence_n to_o maintain_v my_o right_n of_o those_o to_o who_o it_o do_v appertain_v which_o leave_v it_o i_o by_o inheritance_n from_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n our_o church_n of_o france_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a member_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v with_o good_a cause_n say_v unto_o you_o the_o like_a and_o i_o pray_v what_o will_v you_o answer_v you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o religion_n that_o if_o this_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v false_a that_o your_o religion_n be_v a_o thousand_o year_n old_a yet_o be_v no_o elder_a it_o be_v too_o young_a by_o five_o hundred_o year_n at_o the_o least_o to_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n before_o you_o be_v bear_v that_o the_o faith_n in_o which_o you_o be_v baptize_v and_o the_o which_o you_o have_v false_o deny_v be_v plant_v i_o do_v not_o say_v in_o this_o only_a kingdom_n of_o france_n but_o over_o all_o christendom_n if_o you_o pretend_v any_o right_n to_o the_o contrary_a show_v the_o reason_n of_o your_o possession_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o already_o the_o this_o we_o can_v &_o have_v often_o do_v already_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o after_o come_v to_o demand_n it_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o i_o mean_v that_o you_o shall_v yield_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n which_o you_o have_v usurp_v in_o many_o place_n with_o too_o great_a liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o licence_n to_o do_v evil_a which_o be_v the_o very_a death_n of_o the_o soul_n erro●is_fw-la soul_n s._n augustine_n word_n be_v these_o quae_fw-la est_fw-la pejor_fw-la mors_fw-la anima_fw-la quam_fw-la libertas_fw-la erro●is_fw-la as_o saint_n austin_n do_v say_v epist_n 166._o and_o after_o that_o you_o have_v restore_v france_n to_o his_o old_a estate_n than_o there_o will_v be_v more_o appearance_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o you_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n then_o there_o be_v now_o but_o be_v this_o estate_n that_o you_o be_v although_o that_o god_n have_v give_v you_o commission_n the_o which_o he_o never_o think_v he_o will_v have_v call_v it_o back_o because_o of_o your_o noble_a act_n theodosius_n and_o mean_v and_o areadius_n i_o think_v you_o mean_v arcades_n which_o in_o old_a time_n be_v emperor_n of_o rome_n l._n si_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o tantam_fw-la cod_n unde_fw-la vi_fw-la do_v establish_v or_o make_v all_o edict_n that_o if_o the_o true_a owner_n or_o lord_n of_o a_o thing_n shall_v use_v any_o force_n or_o to_o seek_v by_o the_o way_n of_o violence_n without_o stay_v for_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v judge_n even_o thus_o you_o and_o your_o predecessor_n get_v possession_n of_o your_o place_n &_o therefore_o by_o this_o law_n you_o have_v but_o right_a
minister_n either_o be_v the_o author_n of_o any_o wrong_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n or_o that_o either_o they_o or_o their_o follower_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o civil_a war_n and_o trouble_n in_o france_n if_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n have_v any_o such_o right_n to_o geneva_n as_o you_o pretend_v and_o that_o it_o be_v withhold_v from_o he_o it_o be_v a_o civil_a quarrel_n betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o state_n civil_a of_o those_o part_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o you_o can_v prove_v have_v have_v any_o intermeddle_v therein_o and_o as_o for_o the_o trouble_n in_o france_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o story_n thereof_o that_o they_o have_v proceed_v first_o from_o your_o own_o side_n and_o that_o the_o do_n of_o the_o protestant_n prince_n there_o have_v oftentimes_o be_v justify_v even_o by_o the_o king_n own_o edict_n and_o proclamation_n to_o have_v be_v do_v in_o all_o loialty_n and_o that_o their_o war_n have_v be_v but_o defensive_a against_o the_o oppression_n offer_v they_o contrary_a both_o to_o the_o ancient_a law_n and_o present_a edict_n of_o the_o land_n by_o certain_a ambitious_a person_n and_o not_o offensive_a either_o to_o the_o king_n person_n or_o dignity_n and_o as_o for_o your_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o who_o be_v drive_v from_o their_o lyving_n by_o our_o man_n you_o complain_v so_o much_o in_o some_o sort_n i_o confess_v through_o their_o occasion_n indeed_o they_o have_v be_v dispossess_v thereof_o but_o that_o seditious_o or_o tumultuous_o by_o force_n they_o have_v be_v drive_v there_o from_o by_o they_o we_o utter_o deny_v for_o in_o most_o place_n they_o have_v be_v dispossess_v thereof_o by_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o consideration_n of_o the_o badness_n of_o their_o title_n thereunto_o in_o solemn_a and_o lawful_a assembly_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o country_n by_o the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o same_o estate_n as_o namely_o here_o with_o we_o in_o england_n in_o scotland_n and_o in_o other_o kingdom_n where_o the_o gospel_n be_v receive_v and_o establish_v by_o public_a authority_n and_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n orderly_o our_o man_n who_o right_a thereunto_o in_o those_o assembly_n and_o parliamente_n have_v be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o better_a have_v be_v put_v into_o possession_n thereof_o and_o in_o other_o place_n your_o bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o not_o able_a to_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o will_v they_o will_v they_o they_o see_v it_o will_v take_v place_n in_o their_o territory_n forsake_v their_o place_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o those_o that_o have_v more_o right_a thereunto_o as_o for_o example_n they_o do_v in_o geneva_n when_o the_o gospel_n be_v first_o establish_v there_o and_o no_o marvel_v though_o upon_o the_o bare_a preach_v of_o god_n truth_n and_o the_o entertainment_n thereof_o many_o of_o your_o proud_a bishop_n and_o superstitious_a priest_n can_v stand_v no_o long_o in_o their_o place_n for_o when_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n come_v in_o presence_n dagon_n can_v stand_v no_o long_o though_o his_o friend_n set_v he_o up_o again_o never_o so_o often_o yea_o the_o more_o they_o strive_v to_o have_v he_o stand_v the_o more_o dangerous_a fall_n get_v he_o as_o you_o may_v read_v 1._o sam._n 5._o and_o it_o can_v be_v le●ted_v but_o christ_n saying_n will_v take_v place_n and_o be_v verify_v one_o time_n or_o other_o every_o plant_n that_o my_o heavenly_a father_n have_v not_o plant_v shall_v be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n matth._n 15.13_o whereupon_o it_o come_v indeed_o that_o the_o proud_a prelate_n of_o your_o antichristian_a hierarchy_n have_v get_v unto_o themselves_o title_n and_o office_n through_o the_o ambitious_a and_o fond_a devise_n of_o man_n head_n which_o god_n never_o allow_v to_o be_v for_o his_o house_n must_v needs_o when_o god_n mean_v to_o reform_v his_o house_n and_o to_o establish_v his_o own_o order_n therein_o avaunte_o their_o room_n and_o leave_v their_o livinge_n for_o the_o lord_n true_a officer_n and_o allow_v servant_n indeed_o blame_v therefore_o the_o badness_n of_o your_o foundation_n and_o title_n for_o lose_v of_o your_o live_n and_o nothing_o else_o you_o bid_v we_o show_v our_o evidence_n that_o our_o right_n to_o they_o be_v better_a than_o you_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o apply_v tertullians_n word_n in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n against_o heretic_n against_o we_o and_o that_o of_o paul_n how_o shall_v they_o preach_v unless_o they_o be_v send_v roman_n 10._o i_o answer_v you_o not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n also_o our_o minister_n long_o ago_o have_v make_v evident_a demonstration_n unto_o the_o prince_n and_o estate_n that_o have_v drive_v you_o out_o of_o possession_n and_o put_v they_o in_o that_o their_o title_n to_o your_o live_n be_v good_a and_o you_o stark_o naught_o in_o that_o thereby_o they_o prove_v unto_o they_o their_o religion_n to_o be_v ancient_a sound_z and_o apostolic_a and_o you_o to_o be_v but_o of_o a_o late_a antichristian_a stamp_n though_o you_o according_a to_o your_o manner_n say_v we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o your_o religion_n be_v plant_v throughout_o christendom_n 1000_o year_n before_o we_o be_v bear_v which_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v true_a for_o we_o most_o constant_o deny_v both_o that_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n of_o it_o and_o whensoever_o you_o will_v we_o be_v ready_a again_o by_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o doctor_n to_o prove_v our_o right_n by_o the_o same_o argument_n to_o be_v good_a and_o sound_a and_o you_o to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n come_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o it_o when_o and_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o will_n and_o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o evident_a that_o the_o reason_n why_o either_o you_o or_o we_o shall_v pretend_v any_o right_n to_o these_o or_o any_o other_o livinge_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o we_o feed_v the_o church_n with_o wholesome_a and_o sound_o doctrine_n we_o have_v oft_o prove_v we_o so_o to_o be_v by_o the_o ground_n aforesaid_a and_o you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o do_v the_o like_a for_o you_o both_o paul_n saying_n and_o tertullians_n must_v rather_o take_v place_n against_o you_o than_o us._n for_o i_o trust_v you_o will_v confess_v that_o there_o paul_n account_v none_o send_v of_o god_n to_o preach_v but_o those_o that_o preach_v the_o truth_n and_o questionless_a tertullian_n use_v those_o word_n of_o he_o as_o by_o the_o word_n themselves_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o you_o it_o be_v evident_a not_o against_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n sound_o by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n but_o against_o fantastical_a heretic_n such_o as_o have_v teach_v and_o do_v teach_v doctrine_n dissonant_n from_o the_o scripture_n devise_v upon_o their_o own_o head_n against_o who_o he_o be_v to_o prescribe_v both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o sound_n testimony_n of_o those_o that_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n until_o his_o time_n he_o may_v lawful_o and_o to_o good_a purpose_n say_v what_o be_v you_o and_o from_o whence_o do_v you_o come_v etc._n etc._n and_o true_o when_o any_o man_n shall_v enter_v into_o a_o consideration_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o tertullians_n time_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n and_o government_n and_o on_o the_o one_o side_n weigh_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n then_o and_o the_o agreement_n that_o their_o doctrine_n have_v with_o the_o write_v word_n and_o then_o therewith_o on_o the_o other_o side_n compare_v the_o more_o than_o princely_a prelacy_n and_o hierarchy_n that_o have_v be_v these_o many_o year_n and_o yet_o be_v in_o you_o join_v with_o doctrine_n not_o only_o manifold_o differ_v but_o in_o a_o number_n of_o point_n direct_o contrary_v the_o word_n write_v he_o shall_v be_v enforce_v to_o think_v that_o if_o tertullian_n be_v alive_a again_o and_o see_v notwithstanding_o how_o confident_o you_o ruffle_v as_o though_o all_o be_v you_o and_o no_o man_n have_v any_o right_n to_o any_o thing_n but_o yourselves_o he_o will_v more_o vehement_o use_v these_o word_n here_o recite_v by_o you_o against_o your_o prelate_n then_o ever_o he_o do_v against_o martion_n apelles_n or_o any_o other_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n but_o you_o be_v so_o liberal_a unto_o we_o as_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o we_o have_v commission_n from_o god_n yet_o he_o will_v have_v call_v it_o back_o even_o for_o our_o noble_a act_n and_o deed_n in_o drive_v you_o out_o of_o possession_n and_o take_v possession_n though_o of_o our_o own_o before_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v give_v which_o you_o
be_v perceive_v that_o none_o of_o these_o point_n as_o they_o be_v now_o teach_v by_o you_o be_v receive_v for_o catholic_a 360._o year_n ago_o for_o if_o when_o they_o break_v of_o communion_n from_o you_o these_o have_v then_o be_v so_o account_v and_o take_v doubtless_o they_o have_v then_o be_v acquaint_v with_o these_o and_o so_o by_o all_o likelihood_n have_v hold_v they_o as_o they_o do_v other_o thing_n which_o with_o you_o they_o have_v learn_v before_o unto_o this_o day_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o not_o long_o after_o in_o gregory_n the_o tenthes_o time_n in_o a_o council_n at_o lion_n and_o after_o that_o again_o in_o the_o florentine_a council_n labour_n be_v make_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o communion_n &_o union_n with_o you_o again_o and_o that_o in_o the_o first_o michael_z paleologus_fw-la so_o the_o better_a to_o compass_v help_n to_o keep_v his_o kingdom_n which_o with_o brutish_a murder_n he_o have_v get_v and_o some_o other_o of_o his_o friend_n assent_v unto_o a_o decree_n to_o that_o end_n and_o that_o in_o the_o other_o likewise_o johannes_n paleologus_fw-la emperor_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o patriarch_n there_o with_o some_o other_o greek_a bishop_n among_o who_o be_v bessarion_n assent_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o your_o pope_n title_n and_o your_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n but_o withal_o good_a reader_n i_o must_v tell_v thou_o that_o i_o find_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o first_o be_v so_o mislike_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o grecia_n when_o they_o come_v home_o that_o the_o story_n report_n that_o even_o therefore_o they_o hold_v they_o that_o so_o assent_v always_o after_o as_o person_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o church_n and_o when_o they_o die_v deny_v they_o the_o honour_n of_o burial_n and_o that_o likewise_o the_o same_o story_n report_v not_o only_o that_o in_o the_o late_a by_o no_o mean_n they_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o allow_v of_o transubstantiation_n though_o there_o they_o be_v urge_v much_o thereunto_o but_o that_o for_o their_o yield_v in_o the_o other_o they_o be_v so_o resist_v when_o they_o come_v at_o home_n by_o one_o marcus_n the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o other_o bishop_n that_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o recant_v and_o to_o declare_v mere_o void_a all_o that_o they_o have_v do_v there_o yea_o moreover_o it_o be_v record_v in_o a_o ancient_a register_n of_o the_o church_n of_o herford_n that_o in_o 29._o article_n there_o also_o set_v down_o the_o greek_n church_n differ_v quite_o from_o your_o roman_a church_n and_o therefore_o hereby_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o these_o point_n of_o popery_n which_o it_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v be_v either_o not_o at_o all_o or_o at_o least_o not_o universal_o receive_v before_o the_o foresay_v breach_n and_o that_o therefore_o these_o have_v not_o 400_o year_n continuance_n on_o their_o back_n which_o come_v far_o short_a of_o your_o account_n of_o 1500._o year_n further_o evident_a and_o apparent_a proof_n there_o be_v to_o make_v it_o utter_o without_o all_o question_n that_o both_o these_o &_o many_o other_o point_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v be_v far_o young_a than_o your_o reckon_n for_o before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o year_n 1414._o we_o find_v not_o the_o minister_a the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n public_o forbid_v to_o the_o common_a communicant_a and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n it_o be_v permit_v again_o in_o the_o year_n 1431._o to_o the_o bohemians_n to_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n &_o so_o there_o from_o that_o day_n to_o this_o many_o have_v use_v to_o do_v certain_a it_o be_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a that_o in_o his_o time_n with_o be_v 260._o year_n after_o christ_n it_o be_v by_o he_o account_v absurd_a to_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o any_o communicant_a &_o the_o consecratione_n do_v 2._o it_o be_v record_v that_o gelasius_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n 500_o make_v a_o flat_a decree_n to_o bind_v all_o man_n to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n say_v either_o let_v he_o that_o receive_v receive_v both_o or_o neither_o because_o the_o division_n of_o one_o mystery_n can_v be_v without_o sacrilege_n and_o yet_o now_o your_o pope_n &_o their_o counsel_n which_o you_o hold_v can_v err_v condenne_v it_o for_o a_o curse_a heresy_n to_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v needful_a that_o this_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v receive_v of_o all_o communicant_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o distinction_n cap._n peracta_fw-la that_o pope_n calixt_v in_o the_o year_n 223_o make_v a_o flat_a law_n contrary_a to_o your_o receive_a use_n now_o of_o your_o priest_n receve_v all_o alone_a for_o there_o he_o decree_v that_o consecration_n be_v do_v all_o that_o will_v not_o be_v shut_v from_o the_o church_n shall_v communicate_v for_o so_o say_v he_o the_o apostle_n teach_v &_o the_o fashion_n they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v how_o be_v it_o they_o that_o your_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o ancient_a decree_n thus_o ground_v both_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o practice_n then_o of_o that_o church_n in_o this_o point_n now_o practise_v the_o quite_o contrary_a transubstantiation_n the_o very_a life_n of_o your_o mass_n your_o own_o doctor_n tonstal_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n &_o diverse_a other_o of_o your_o friend_n as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o cap._n 11._o confess_v be_v not_o enact_v &_o decree_v for_o a_o catholic_a truth_n among_o yourselves_o before_o innocent_a the_o 3_o time_n 1215_o in_o the_o lateran_n council_n which_o be_v after_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v go_v from_o you_o &_o so_o it_o be_v rather_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o particular_a assembly_n then_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_v though_o the_o greek_n reject_v this_o your_o council_n and_o decree_n your_o own_o schoolman_n canonist_n and_o chronicler_n as_o durand_n albertus_n gabriel_n biel_n innocentius_n vrspergensis_n and_o other_o show_v from_o point_n to_o point_n and_o from_o piece_n to_o piece_n who_o invent_v &_o devise_v your_o mass_n withal_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o as_o also_o polidor_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n and_o 9_o chapter_n of_o the_o inventour_n of_o thing_n and_o platina_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o first_o it_o be_v so_o long_a a_o lick_n before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o shape_n it_o now_o have_v and_o be_v patch_v together_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o these_o and_o other_o your_o own_o writer_n by_o so_o many_o pope_n so_o long_o distant_a one_o from_o a_o other_o in_o time_n that_o it_o will_v require_v a_o good_a pretty_a long_a treatise_n to_o set_v down_o the_o several_a shred_n and_o morselle_n thereof_o with_o the_o author_n and_o deviser_n of_o they_o which_o thing_n consider_v it_o be_v the_o like_v a_o beggar_n cloak_n consist_v of_o a_o infinite_a sort_n of_o patch_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o of_o sundry_a colour_n sow_v and_o cobble_v together_o that_o can_v be_v the_o mass_n now_o use_v in_o your_o church_n common_o call_v s._n gregory_n mass_n be_v first_o receive_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n adrian_n 780._o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o for_o other_o account_v it_o more_o as_o witness_v durand_n nauclere_n &_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la in_o the_o life_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o for_o before_o that_o s._n ambrose_n lyturgie_n be_v much_o in_o use_n and_o the_o last_o of_o these_o author_n report_n that_o when_o with_o much_o a_o do_v adrian_z have_v get_v it_o to_o be_v decree_v in_o a_o council_n that_o s._n gregory_n mass_n shall_v be_v universal_o use_v and_o charles_n the_o emperor_n have_v labour_v both_o by_o fair_a and_o foul_a mean_n to_o cause_v the_o same_o decree_n to_o be_v execute_v and_o yet_o many_o will_v hardly_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o use_n of_o saint_n ambroses_n one_o eugenius_n see_v this_o stir_n about_o it_o give_v the_o pope_n this_o grave_a advice_n that_o the_o book_n of_o both_o the_o liturgy_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o the_o church_n door_n shall_v careful_o be_v shut_v and_o seal_v with_o the_o signet_n of_o sundry_a bishop_n and_o that_o then_o they_o shall_v give_v themselves_o all_o that_o night_n to_o earnest_a prayer_n that_o god_n by_o some_o evident_a sign_n may_v show_v which_o of_o they_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v use_v who_o counsel_n be_v in_o every_o point_n follow_v in_o the_o next_o morning_n when_o they_o go_v into_o the_o church_n they_o find_v as_o say_v the_o story_n only_a s._n ambrose_n book_n open_v and_o lie_v upon_o the_o
deal_v with_o such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o have_v they_o to_o approve_v his_o call_n by_o miracle_n whereas_o we_o in_o this_o be_v far_o more_o substantial_o justify_v by_o the_o scripture_n from_o whence_o our_o doctrine_n have_v warrant_v that_o have_v wrought_v this_o effect_n than_o it_o can_v have_v by_o miracle_n for_o as_o when_o the_o law_n be_v first_o publish_v with_o all_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o it_o be_v needful_a because_o they_o it_o be_v new_a that_o moses_n credit_n the_o publisher_n thereof_o &_o the_o law_n itself_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n but_o when_o in_o the_o reign_v of_o josiah_n hilkiah_n the_o priest_n find_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n which_o have_v lie_v hide_v before_o a_o long_a time_n &_o so_o do_v but_o revive_v or_o renew_v the_o same_o law_n that_o be_v before_o sufficient_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n he_o wrought_v no_o miracle_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o call_v for_o or_o look_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n for_o it_o be_v needle_n even_o so_o when_o the_o cease_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a service_n of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o end_v &_o the_o new_a priesthood_n of_o christ_n to_o come_v in_o place_n thereof_o &_o so_o withal_o that_o then_o first_o it_o shall_v be_v notify_v both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_a who_o be_v and_o be_v the_o very_a person_n of_o the_o messiah_n &_o what_o new_a government_n &_o sacrament_n he_o will_v have_v in_o his_o house_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o miracle_n shall_v be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v the_o ministry_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v teach_v these_o new_a &_o strange_a thing_n first_o unto_o the_o world_n but_o now_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v already_o then_o sufficient_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n we_o come_v in_o these_o late_a day_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o preach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n than_o the_o former_a and_o so_o only_o renew_v and_o reviue_v the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o which_o by_o the_o ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n of_o former_a time_n have_v lyen_fw-we in_o great_a part_n hide_v no_o more_o at_o our_o hand_n ought_v miracle_n to_o be_v look_v for_o indeed_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v but_o once_o that_o we_o labour_v to_o set_v abroach_o a_o new_a doctrine_n as_o you_o often_o in_o word_n charge_v we_o that_o never_o be_v before_o sufficient_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n or_o if_o the_o manner_n that_o we_o use_v to_o revive_v it_o by_o be_v any_o other_o but_o the_o ancient_a ordinary_a way_n that_o god_n have_v always_o allow_v in_o his_o church_n there_o be_v yet_o some_o colour_n of_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v thus_o call_v for_o at_o our_o hand_n but_o see_v we_o stand_v upon_o that_o point_n and_o have_v always_o do_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o very_a same_o and_o no_o other_o that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v which_o by_o they_o in_o their_o time_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o deal_n to_o spread_v the_o same_o again_o be_v but_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n by_o they_o leave_v for_o the_o same_o purpose_n unto_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o in_o match_v we_o thus_o as_o you_o do_v with_o moses_n and_o in_o require_v miracle_n of_o we_o as_o of_o he_o and_o until_o you_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o doctrine_n that_o we_o preach_v be_v false_a which_o you_o never_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o three_o place_n which_o you_o cite_v out_o of_o jeremie_n 14.27_o &_o 29._o utter_v by_o he_o to_o admonish_v the_o people_n in_o his_o time_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o suffer_v of_o themselves_o to_o be_v seduce_v with_o the_o false_a and_o lie_a prophet_n that_o be_v in_o those_o day_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o we_o nor_o yet_o appertain_v to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o see_v we_o work_v no_o miracle_n therefore_o our_o commission_n can_v be_v good_a in_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o reform_v you_o for_o in_o these_o place_n even_o by_o the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o yourself_o it_o most_o evident_o appear_v that_o he_o warn_v the_o people_n to_o take_v heed_n only_o of_o such_o prophet_n as_o prophesy_v false_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n have_v no_o vocation_n from_o he_o and_o labour_v to_o seduce_v the_o people_n by_o false_a vision_n naughty_a divination_n southsaying_n and_o their_o own_o dream_n whereas_o we_o have_v ordinary_a vocation_n from_o god_n preach_v nothing_o but_o truth_n warrant_v by_o his_o word_n and_o never_o use_v but_o always_o abhor_v the_o use_n of_o all_o these_o mean_n that_o they_o use_v to_o seduce_v the_o people_n by_o but_o herein_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o lord_n most_o plain_o forewarn_v his_o people_n of_o such_o as_o you_o be_v for_o you_o be_v they_o indeed_o that_o be_v never_o send_v of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o preach_v false_a doctrine_n as_o do_v appear_v not_o only_o by_o the_o dissent_v but_o by_o the_o contrariety_n of_o your_o doctrine_n in_o a_o number_n of_o point_n from_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o have_v note_v in_o sundry_a place_n in_o this_o my_o answer_n to_o you_o and_o than_o who_o never_o any_o false_a prophet_n in_o the_o world_n more_o rely_v upon_o false_a vision_n divination_n southsaying_n &_o fond_a dream_n for_o indeed_o they_o be_v the_o best_a &_o most_o usual_a pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o your_o popish_a doctrine_n for_o what_o be_v more_o common_a with_o you_o then_o to_o the_o end_n these_o may_v have_v place_n to_o complain_v and_o by_o long_o rhetorical_a discourse_n to_o make_v what_o show_v you_o can_v of_o the_o obscurity_n unsufficiency_n and_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o word_n write_v that_o so_o with_o some_o colour_n you_o may_v show_v the_o trial_n of_o your_o doctrine_n by_o that_o touchstone_n and_o all_o because_o in_o your_o own_o conscience_n you_o know_v that_o it_o can_v be_v justify_v thereby_o and_o then_o when_o thus_o you_o have_v satisfy_v yourselves_o in_o weaken_v what_o you_o may_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prepare_v a_o way_n for_o yourselves_o to_o fly_v from_o they_o than_o you_o break_v out_o into_o commendation_n of_o the_o word_n unwriten_a tradition_n and_o lively_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o so_o by_o that_o window_n you_o may_v thrust_v in_o and_o out_o to_o the_o church_n whatsoever_o please_v you_o be_v it_o never_o so_o fond_a a_o vision_n divination_n or_o dream_n of_o your_o own_o drowsy_a head_n but_o yet_o once_o again_o for_o lack_v of_o miracle_n howsoever_o the_o case_n stand_v whither_o we_o be_v send_v of_o god_n or_o no_o for_o your_o refuse_v to_o yield_v unto_o we_o you_o think_v you_o may_v plead_v simplicity_n and_o ignorance_n for_o your_o excuse_n as_o abimelech_n do_v gen._n 20._o especial_o you_o say_v see_v you_o be_v will_v not_o to_o believe_v every_o spirit_n and_o see_v you_o read_v that_o the_o angel_n of_o darkness_n will_v sometime_o transform_v himself_o into_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n etc._n etc._n but_o withal_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o you_o be_v will_v to_o search_v the_o scripture_n john_n 5._o &_o so_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n whither_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o 1._o joh._n 4._o for_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n wise_a to_o salvation_n &_o thorough_o to_o furnish_v he_o to_o all_o good_a work_n 2._o tim._n 3._o which_o if_o you_o do_v as_o you_o ought_v thereby_o you_o shall_v be_v drive_v to_o perceive_v that_o not_o only_o our_o call_n be_v of_o god_n but_o that_o also_o we_o teach_v the_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o same_o and_o that_o therefore_o notwithstanding_o we_o work_v no_o miracle_n yet_o your_o ignorance_n can_v be_v simple_a ignorance_n as_o abimelechs_n be_v but_o either_o wilful_a or_o of_o a_o idle_a peevish_a negligence_n and_o therefore_o such_o as_o can_v excuse_v you_o in_o refuse_v to_o believe_v us._n and_o as_o it_o be_v write_v that_o sathan_n will_v so_o transform_v himself_o as_o you_o write_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v take_v heed_n what_o way_n we_o take_v for_o there_o be_v a_o way_n that_o seem_v good_a and_o yet_o lead_v to_o destruction_n so_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o still_o the_o due_a consideration_n of_o the_o write_v word_n be_v the_o mean_n to_o preserve_v we_o from_o the_o danger_n of_o both_o for_o thereby_o christ_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o withstand_v he_o mat._n 4._o even_n when_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o fortify_v his_o temptation_n with_o the_o word_n write_v itself_o &_o whereby_o else_o shall_v a_o young_a man_n learn_v to_o frame_v his_o way_n aright_o but_o by_o take_v heed_n thereunto_o according_a
our_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o true_a &_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o ever_o since_o continue_v in_o christ_n true_a church_n namely_o first_o for_o that_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n we_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o preach_v see_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o their_o preach_n and_o write_v agree_v and_o second_o because_o our_o religion_n in_o all_o point_n agree_v with_o the_o ancient_a ground_n of_o the_o catechism_n the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o lord_n prayer_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o these_o cause_n indeed_o we_o most_o confident_o say_v and_o advouch_v that_o you_o do_v we_o extreme_a wrong_n the_o truth_n &_o soundness_n of_o these_o two_o reason_n notwithstanding_o either_o to_o call_v our_o church_n or_o religion_n new_a or_o thus_o to_o call_v for_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o now_o as_o though_o it_o have_v never_o be_v confirm_v thereby_o before_o but_o in_o all_o this_o with_o you_o we_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o with_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n i_o hope_v it_o be_v to_o good_a and_o great_a purpose_n see_v hereby_o we_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o new_a and_o but_o of_o 40._o year_n continuance_n as_o here_o most_o untrue_o you_o charge_v it_o but_o old_a &_o ancient_a because_o it_o agree_v in_o every_o point_n with_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_a catechism_n all_o you_o say_v to_o confute_v this_o argument_n of_o we_o be_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v our_o catechism_n of_o you_o &_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v not_o or_o can_v not_o have_v come_v by_o it_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o we_o have_v have_v no_o better_a catechiser_n than_o you_o we_o have_v yet_o be_v but_o bad_o catechise_v and_o this_o further_a you_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o your_o credit_n be_v by_o your_o long_a and_o manifold_a lewd_a deal_n so_o crack_a with_o we_o if_o we_o have_v not_o find_v these_o part_n of_o the_o catechism_n either_o flat_o express_v or_o sufficient_o confirm_v and_o ground_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n upon_o your_o credit_n we_o have_v not_o receive_v they_o beside_o as_o i_o have_v plentiful_o show_v in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n we_o have_v have_v in_o all_o age_n from_o christ_n down_o to_o our_o own_o very_o many_o of_o our_o own_o religion_n that_o have_v continue_v and_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n deliver_v unto_o we_o these_o part_n of_o the_o catechism_n more_o sound_o and_o faithful_o than_o you_o have_v do_v so_o that_o if_o you_o have_v never_o be_v we_o shall_v far_o better_v and_o soon_o have_v learn_v these_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o most_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n these_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n also_o continue_v among_o you_o that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v the_o more_o without_o excuse_n in_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o light_n that_o may_v have_v shine_v unto_o you_o thereby_o you_o yet_o choose_v rather_o to_o walk_v in_o gross_a and_o palpable_a darkness_n then_o in_o the_o light_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o sathan_n the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n in_o your_o synagogue_n through_o the_o help_n of_o his_o vicar_n general_a your_o pope_n and_o his_o chaplain_n never_o cease_v until_o by_o one_o blind_a and_o hellish_a persuasion_n or_o other_o whatsoever_o paul_n have_v teach_v to_o the_o contrary_a 1_o corint_n 14._o he_o bring_v to_o pass_v not_o only_o that_o all_o your_o lyturgie_n and_o service_n shall_v be_v in_o latin_a and_o rather_o lie_v legend_n permit_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n public_o in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n than_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n but_o also_o that_o these_o portion_n of_o the_o catechism_n shall_v either_o not_o be_v learn_v at_o all_o or_o else_o only_o in_o the_o latin_a and_o unknowen_a tongue_n which_o he_o know_v be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n otherwise_o then_o thus_o by_o your_o good_a will_n how_o little_a soever_o we_o have_v understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n we_o shall_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o learn_v they_o and_o therefore_o this_o learning_n be_v altogether_o wtout_fw-fr edification_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v brag_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v our_o catechism_n of_o you_o nor_o why_o we_o shall_v account_v ourselves_o any_o thing_n in_o your_o debt_n for_o the_o same_o further_o to_o make_v it_o yet_o more_o appear_v how_o little_a beholden_a we_o be_v to_o you_o for_o teach_v we_o the_o catechism_n let_v we_o but_o a_o little_a consider_v even_o your_o most_o diligent_a catechise_n of_o man_n in_o these_o three_o part_n thereof_o here_o name_v by_o you_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o creed_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n first_o concern_v the_o ten_o commandment_n in_o steed_n of_o one_o god_n which_o there_o we_o be_v command_v to_o have_v you_o in_o teach_v we_o to_o worship_v saint_n angel_n your_o breaden_a god_n and_o your_o pope_n as_o you_o do_v have_v teach_v we_o to_o worship_v so_o many_o more_o god_n than_o one_o and_o second_o that_o your_o image_n and_o idol_n may_v stand_v to_o the_o enritch_n of_o your_o clergy_n with_o the_o idolatrous_a offering_n unto_o they_o it_o be_v and_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n with_o you_o in_o set_v down_o the_o commandment_n in_o your_o catechism_n and_o elsewhere_o to_o leave_v the_o second_o commandment_n quite_o out_o which_o be_v direct_o both_o against_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o yet_o lest_o you_o shall_v of_o every_o one_o be_v spy_v in_o find_v they_o but_o 9_o you_o divide_v the_o ten_o into_o two_o and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o 2._o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n by_o your_o ordinary_a &_o most_o common_a practice_n the_o people_n be_v teach_v whatsoever_o be_v there_o to_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o very_o well_o become_v they_o of_o your_o school_n usual_o to_o swear_v by_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v no_o god_n and_o to_o season_v all_o their_o common_a talk_n with_o oath_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o day_n which_o shall_v be_v keep_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n to_o a_o day_n of_o the_o great_a vanity_n and_o impiety_n of_o all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o table_n never_o do_v the_o jew_n more_o make_v the_o 5._o commandment_n of_o none_o effect_n for_o love_n of_o their_o corban_n than_o you_o have_v do_v to_o maintain_v your_o infinite_a order_n of_o monk_n friar_n &_o nun_n in_o all_o contempt_n and_o neglect_n of_o duty_n to_o their_o parent_n if_o once_o you_o can_v entice_v they_o into_o those_o cloister_n how_o precious_a soever_o blood_n be_v yet_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n have_v it_o be_v with_o you_o that_o your_o synagogue_n be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n saint_n and_o every_o varlet_n be_v not_o only_o easy_o dispense_v withal_o with_o you_o but_o also_o often_o much_o commend_v if_o he_o can_v though_o never_o so_o traitorous_o imbrue_v his_o hand_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o your_o kingdom_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o subject_n or_o prince_n brother_n or_o of_o who_o soever_o else_o and_o as_o for_o adultery_n or_o fornication_n yea_o for_o sin_n against_o nature_n not_o to_o be_v name_v your_o great_a catechiser_n never_o have_v seem_v to_o make_v reckon_v of_o in_o that_o notwithstanding_o they_o know_v that_o these_o have_v follow_v in_o such_o infinite_a measure_n upon_o their_o enforce_a single_a life_n in_o every_o corner_n that_o the_o stench_n thereof_o have_v long_o ago_o reach_v up_o unto_o heaven_n to_o pull_v down_o god_n fierce_a vengeance_n against_o you_o yet_o rather_o than_o they_o will_v let_v go_v this_o trick_n of_o hypocrisy_n they_o be_v content_v that_o this_o ●ench_n increase_v still_o your_o infinite_a and_o open_a sacrilege_n in_o building_n &_o sound_v your_o cloister_n and_o prelacy_n in_o sp●●●ing_v the_o several_a parish_n of_o their_o ordinary_a maintenance_n for_o their_o minister_n &_o other_o your_o innumerable_a &_o unsatiable_a pilling_n &_o poling_n of_o god_n church_n your_o decree_n and_o practice_v in_o not_o keep_v any_o faith_n with_o those_o who_o you_o count_v heretic_n and_o your_o ordinary_a doctrine_n that_o bare_a concupiscence_n ●s_v no_o sin_n show_v what_o catechiser_n you_o be_v for_o the_o rest_n and_o whereas_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o be_v teach_v indeed_o to_o believe_v only_o in_o the_o trinity_n in_o that_o you_o usual_o teach_v we_o to_o trust_v yea_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n to_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n beside_o and_o to_o pray_v unto_o saint_n and_o angel_n it_o be_v plain_o teach_v we_o in_o the_o word_n that_o beside_o god_n there_o be_v not_o saviour_n esa_n 43._o and_o that_o christ_n name_n be_v the_o only_a name_n of_o
gentile_n &_o namely_o to_o augustus_n cesar_n which_o profess_v though_o they_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o gentile_n have_v thereby_o some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o come_n manner_n of_o come_v &_o office_n of_o such_o a_o messiah_n yet_o they_o prove_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v notwithstanding_o a_o thing_n new_a and_o not_o understand_v to_o most_o of_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o at_o all_o prove_v but_o that_o still_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o particular_a person_n of_o that_o messiah_n namely_o that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o the_o jew_n crucify_v be_v he_o &_o no_o other_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_a and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n to_o confirm_v that_o by_o miracle_n whereas_o now_o among_o we_o that_o bear_v any_o way_n the_o name_n of_o christian_n that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a neither_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o we_o preach_v but_o to_o those_o to_o who_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v new_a and_o therefore_o as_o yet_o there_o remain_v cause_n sufficient_a why_o the_o apostle_n shall_v work_v miracle_n and_o not_o we_o this_o also_o i_o can_v but_o tell_v you_o of_o that_o howsoever_o the_o sybilles_n be_v report_v to_o have_v prophesy_v of_o christ_n your_o comparison_n be_v very_o odious_a when_o you_o say_v they_o do_v it_o as_o full_o and_o as_o plain_o as_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o that_o you_o wrong_v augustine_n too_o too_o much_o in_o make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o either_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o you_o or_o any_o where_o else_o join_v with_o you_o in_o that_o malaperte_a comparison_n but_o these_o comparison_n of_o you_o argue_v the_o profaneness_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o direct_v your_o pen_n the_o xx._n chapter_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v anounce_v among_o the_o gentile_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o notwithstanding_o this_o do_v not_o let_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v with_o many_o notable_a miracle_n although_o they_o do_v not_o teach_v but_o that_o doctrine_n that_o be_v very_o ancient_a and_o although_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v new_a and_o unknowen_a to_o the_o gentile_n yet_o you_o can_v allege_v that_o it_o be_v so_o they_o so_o yes_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o true_a doctrine_n both_o of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n be_v new_a and_o strange_a unto_o they_o unto_o the_o jew_n for_o they_o be_v study_v and_o learn_v in_o moses_n law_n they_o hear_v nothing_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o have_v be_v prophesy_v by_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o saint_n paul_n say_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o he_o be_v separate_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n the_o which_o god_n promise_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o scripture_n act._n 3._o saint_n peter_n talk_v with_o the_o jew_n do_v give_v they_o plain_o to_o understande_v that_o his_o be_v no_o new_a doctrine_n because_o that_o he_o do_v preach_v jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o moses_n have_v prophesy_v long_o before_o say_v thus_o 16._o thus_o b_o deut._n 16._o god_n shall_v raise_v a_o prophet_n among_o your_o brethren_n say_v brethren_n deut._n 18_o you_o will_v say_v you_o shall_v obey_v he_o as_o you_o do_v i_o and_o he_o that_o do_v refuse_v it_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n saint_n peter_n say_v afterward_o all_o the_o prophet_n that_o have_v be_v from_o samuel_n unto_o this_o time_n do_v announce_v unto_o you_o these_o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n that_o we_o do_v preach_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v preach_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o as_o 10._o as_o act._n 10._o saint_n peter_n say_v unto_o cornelius_n all_z the_o prophet_n have_v witness_v that_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o it_o have_v be_v so_o prophesy_v by_o esay_n say_v esay_n 53_o you_o shall_v have_v say_v cap._n 55._o unto_o the_o people_n above_o eight_o hundred_o year_n say_v that_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o his_o son_n all_o our_o iniquity_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v in_o his_o book_n in_o the_o which_o he_o do_v show_v himself_o more_o an_o evangelist_n than_o a_o prophet_n for_o there_o he_o do_v write_v the_o torment_n of_o our_o saviour_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a at_o his_o passion_n david_n likewise_o do_v talk_n of_o the_o like_a where_o he_o do_v mention_v the_o extreme_a affliction_n of_o our_o redeemer_n and_o of_o the_o gall_n and_o isope_n and_o the_o vinager_n daniel_n do_v not_o only_o descry_v the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o therewithal_o the_o very_a time_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v and_o to_o be_v brief_a all_o the_o prophet_n have_v announce_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v preach_v unto_o they_o now_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v why_o this_o old_a doctrine_n preach_v aswell_o to_o the_o gentile_n as_o to_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v confirm_v with_o many_o miracle_n which_o they_o do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n who_o send_v they_o the_o cause_n be_v this_o the_o devil_n have_v so_o obscure_v and_o hide_v the_o truth_n over_o all_o nation_n that_o superstitious_a idolatry_n have_v take_v place_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o poor_a painim_n do_v not_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o one_o god_n but_o in_o a_o multitude_n of_o go_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o true_a religion_n give_v by_o god_n to_o the_o israelite_n have_v be_v trouble_v and_o almost_o clean_o abolish_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o the_o which_o they_o do_v trust_v for_o the_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n cause_n sin_n and_o in_o your_o own_o conscience_n you_o can_v but_o see_v we_o have_v just_a cause_n the_o like_a do_v you_o report_v of_o we_o and_o of_o your_o great_a courtesy_n you_o be_v content_a to_o match_v we_o with_o the_o superstitious_a jew_n and_o idolatrous_a paynim_n place_v your_o self_n in_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o pure_a gospeler_n and_o the_o true_a child_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o you_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o call_v your_o congregation_n the_o true_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n this_o sound_v notable_o well_o but_o see_v that_o your_o cause_n be_v absolute_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n as_o they_o do_v preach_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o god_n as_o they_o do_v and_o deal_v with_o superstitious_a idolater_n that_o cleave_v more_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n they_o unto_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o jew_n see_v then_o that_o our_o case_n be_v report_v unto_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o you_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o do_v not_o as_o they_o do_v see_v that_o you_o be_v send_v from_o one_o master_n why_o end_n why_o because_o our_o doctrine_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o they_o be_v their_o miracle_n serve_v sufficient_o to_o confirm_v it_o to_o take_v away_o all_o excuse_n from_o they_o that_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o the_o world_n end_n do_v you_o not_o make_v your_o commission_n appear_v by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n see_v that_o god_n have_v ever_o do_v the_o like_a heretofore_o when_o he_o have_v send_v the_o like_a commission_n to_o you_o the_o xx._n chapter_n i_o have_v show_v you_o my_o reason_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n why_o you_o must_v stay_v for_o all_o your_o premise_n from_o the_o conclusion_n that_o you_o begin_v withal_o in_o this_o for_o howsoever_o some_o few_o of_o they_o they_o hear_v in_o some_o sort_n that_o such_o a_o messiah_n either_o shall_v come_v or_o be_v come_v yet_o the_o particular_a person_n who_o that_o same_o be_v be_v first_o preach_v by_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n &_o second_o by_o zacharie_n and_o elizabeth_n his_o wife_n luke_n 1._o before_o he_o be_v bear_v then_o by_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o shepherd_n the_o day_n of_o his_o birth_n after_o by_o simeon_n and_o anna_n john_n baptist_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o it_o follow_v set_v down_o in_o the_o story_n luke_n 2._o etc._n etc._n but_o you_o say_v yet_o further_o that_o though_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v jesus_n christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o gentile_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o apostle_n preach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o
have_v warrant_n from_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o you_o prove_v i_o grant_v well_o out_o of_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o rom._n and_o 10._o of_o the_o act_n confer_v those_o place_n with_o the_o 53._o of_o esay_n though_o wrong_v quote_v by_o you_o and_o out_o of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n i_o grant_v they_o preach_v nothing_o that_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v new_a unto_o they_o forasmuch_o as_o every_o thing_n that_o they_o preach_v have_v ground_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o yet_o as_o you_o after_o seem_v to_o confess_v it_o be_v grow_v new_a not_o only_o to_o the_o gentile_n but_o also_o to_o the_o jew_n in_o that_o they_o be_v mislead_v in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o prophecy_n that_o go_v before_o of_o he_o both_o concern_v his_o person_n and_o office_n through_o their_o ignorance_n corrupt_a gloss_n &_o interpretation_n that_o by_o false_a teacher_n be_v make_v thereof_o insomuch_o that_o when_o the_o messiah_n come_v and_o execute_v his_o office_n though_o indeed_o all_o the_o ancient_a prophecy_n be_v yea_o &_o amen_o in_o he_o and_o most_o plain_o in_o respect_n of_o every_o circumstance_n verify_v yet_o they_o can_v not_o be_v persuade_v either_o that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o in_o person_n or_o office_n as_o he_o be_v and_o therefore_o then_o once_o it_o be_v necessary_a by_o all_o other_o good_a mean_n &_o miracle_n also_o to_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n concern_v he_o which_o be_v thorough_o do_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n now_o whereas_o hereupon_o you_o will_v infer_v that_o see_v we_o match_v you_o with_o the_o superstitious_a jew_n and_o idolatrous_a painim_n and_o ourselves_o take_v upon_o we_o succession_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o true_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n and_o to_o reform_v you_o of_o your_o error_n as_o they_o do_v they_o therefore_o we_o preach_v that_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n that_o they_o do_v we_o now_o also_o shall_v confirm_v our_o doctrine_n &_o commission_n by_o miracle_n as_o they_o do_v beside_o many_o other_o there_o be_v two_o principal_a thing_n that_o let_v you_o from_o this_o conclusion_n the_o first_o be_v that_o howsoever_o other_o thing_n be_v old_a y_o they_o teach_v of_o god_n &_o the_o messiah_n yet_o this_o be_v new_a who_o be_v the_o very_a person_n of_o the_o messiah_n wherein_o if_o they_o have_v err_v though_o otherwise_o they_o have_v right_o understand_v the_o general_a doctrine_n both_o of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n it_o have_v be_v most_o dangerous_a for_o they_o and_o therefore_o that_o doctrine_n especial_o be_v urge_v by_o they_o as_o for_o example_n you_o may_v see_v in_o peter_n sermon_n to_o cornelius_n act._n 10._o and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o that_o doctrine_n they_o work_v all_o their_o miracle_n not_o general_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o messiah_n but_o particular_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o nazareth_n as_o it_o appear_v act._n 3.6_o etc._n etc._n which_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o you_o we_o have_v not_o for_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n agree_v on_o betwixt_o us._n another_o stop_n to_o your_o conclusion_n be_v see_v that_o doctrine_n have_v be_v once_o sufficient_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o we_o teach_v and_o you_o have_v the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o miracle_n set_v down_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n whereunto_o you_o seem_v to_o give_v credit_n as_o well_o as_o we_o it_o be_v thenceforth_o needle_n for_o the_o minister_n thereof_o howsoever_o they_o meet_v with_o people_n that_o for_o idolatry_n &_o superstitious_a error_n match_v the_o gentile_n &_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o use_v any_o other_o proof_n they_o from_o those_o record_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o ought_v now_o to_o be_v account_v sufficient_a &_o therefore_o now_o the_o call_n for_o miracle_n to_o be_v out_o of_o time_n to_o reason_v therefore_o as_o you_o do_v it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n to_o work_v miracle_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v necessary_a also_o now_o for_o we_o though_o our_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o be_v beside_o and_o without_o reason_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o recant_v no_o whit_n for_o compare_v you_o to_o the_o superstitious_a jew_n and_o idolatrous_a heathen_a for_o if_o either_o be_v worse_o than_o other_o we_o think_v it_o be_v like_a to_o prove_v yourselves_o in_o that_o have_v far_o better_a mean_n and_o more_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o christ_n than_o they_o have_v yet_o you_o multiply_v your_o idolatry_n and_o superstitious_a conceit_n far_o beyond_o they_o and_o even_o for_o this_o that_o notwithstanding_o your_o better_a mean_n to_o keep_v you_o in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o your_o more_o knowledge_n than_o they_o have_v when_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n come_v first_o unto_o they_o to_o preach_v this_o gospel_n you_o match_v they_o in_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o in_o multitude_n of_o superstition_n and_o false_a opinion_n be_v it_o that_o god_n vouchsafe_v the_o better_a to_o convert_v they_o to_o work_v miracle_n then_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o answer_v you_o now_o as_o the_o rich_a glutton_n be_v enforce_v in_o the_o like_a case_n you_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n yea_o &_o also_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v though_o one_o shall_v rise_v from_o death_n again_o or_o what_o miracle_n soever_o else_o be_v wrought_v but_o where_o as_o you_o suppose_v that_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v miracle_n be_v the_o blind_a idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_a &_o superstition_n of_o the_o jew_n only_a and_o not_o any_o newness_n of_o any_o part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n you_o be_v much_o deceive_v as_o you_o may_v perceive_v by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v again_o if_o you_o will_v persuade_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v in_o no_o point_n new_a because_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o one_o god_n and_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o messiah_n in_o some_o point_n it_o be_v not_o or_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v so_o your_o logic_n be_v flend_a for_o in_o other_o point_v it_o may_v be_v new_a as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o and_o so_o in_o respect_n thereof_o though_o not_o of_o the_o other_o miracle_n be_v necessary_a but_o this_o your_o objection_n of_o lack_n of_o miracle_n please_v you_o so_o well_o that_o you_o can_v have_v do_v with_o it_o let_v we_o therefore_o hear_v what_o further_o you_o can_v say_v touch_v this_o matter_n the_o xxi_o chapter_n you_o do_v conjure_v we_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o live_a god_n to_o receive_v your_o gospel_n and_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o you_o do_v threaten_v we_o that_o you_o will_v shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o your_o foot_n in_o testimony_n against_o we_o because_o that_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v your_o word_n but_o in_o this_o matter_n you_o do_v allege_v a_o wrong_n text_n for_o we_o be_v very_o simple_a if_o we_o shall_v forsake_v or_o remove_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o church_n upon_o such_o a_o occasion_n as_o i_o will_v show_v by_o this_o discourse_n that_o do_v follow_v i_o be_o sure_a that_o you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o that_o luther_n after_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v his_o gospel_n be_v not_o find_v barren_a for_o immediate_o after_o his_o beginning_n he_o do_v engender_v another_o gospeller_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n andrew_n coralstadius_n and_o from_o thence_o be_v produce_v another_o call_v zuinglius_fw-la and_o of_o zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n then_o thomas_n muncerus_n consider_v that_o he_o have_v no_o less_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n then_o the_o rest_n he_o begin_v to_o forge_v a_o new_a gospel_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n with_o the_o which_o he_o think_v to_o gratify_v the_o town_n of_o milhouse_n who_o have_v receive_v already_o the_o gospel_n of_o luther_n but_o the_o senate_n of_o that_o town_n be_v weary_v already_o with_o two_o many_o strange_a gospel_n they_o advertise_v luther_n you_o first_o apostle_n of_o it_o and_o he_o write_v to_o they_o again_o that_o thomas_n muncerus_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v if_o he_o can_v not_o prove_v his_o vocation_n by_o some_o miracle_n and_o if_o you_o demand_v where_o i_o have_v find_v this_o i_o say_v to_o you_o not_o in_o the_o work_n of_o some_o lie_a papist_n but_o in_o the_o commentary_n of_o your_o dear_a historiographer_n master_n 4._o master_n a_o lib._n 8._o fol._n 4._o sleydon_n who_o have_v so_o good_a a_o grace_n in_o his_o writing_n and_o be_v so_o move_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o spirit_n 5._o spirit_n either_o you_o have_v wondrous_a ill_a hap_n for_o your_o quotation_n or_o else_o your_o printer_n be_v too_o bad_a for_o it_o be_v
the_o xxiiii_o chapter_n the_o catholic_a church_n continual_o have_v faithful_o hold_v &_o do_v hold_v that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v true_a god_n and_o man_n have_v take_v natural_a flesh_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n whole_o like_a unto_o we_o as_o touch_v the_o corporal_a essence_n that_o be_v to_o say_v except_v only_a sin_n the_o which_o body_n he_o do_v form_n of_o the_o very_a flesh_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o mother_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o have_v wrought_v so_o notable_a and_o excellent_a a_o work_n that_o two_o contrary_a or_o diverse_a nature_n be_v miraculous_o join_v &_o unite_v in_o one_o person_n without_o confusion_n or_o conversion_n of_o the_o one_o substance_n into_o the_o other_o but_o by_o conjunction_n &_o union_n of_o they_o both_o call_v by_o the_o divine_n hipostatique_a this_o doctrine_n have_v ever_o be_v receive_v and_o hold_v by_o the_o church_n in_o equal_a degree_n of_o truth_n and_o reverence_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o now_o you_o seek_v to_o abolish_v and_o notwithstanding_o this_o diverse_a minister_n and_o preacher_n derive_v from_o the_o sacred_a consistory_n of_o valentinus_n photinus_n manes_n theodorus_n nestorius_n apollinaris_n eutichus_n macharius_fw-la eutiocheus_n beside_o a_o great_a number_n of_o other_o famous_a heretic_n that_o i_o can_v here_o name_v have_v seek_v to_o teach_v the_o contrary_a say_v that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o he_o that_o send_v the_o apostle_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n world_n church_n thus_o at_o your_o pleasure_n you_o father_n upon_o these_o heretic_n to_o make_v they_o resemble_v we_o that_o the_o contrary_a whereof_o the_o ancient_a father_n attribute_n unto_o they_o namely_o that_o they_o shun_v trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o accuse_v they_o of_o unsufficiency_n &_o darkness_n and_o so_o flee_v to_o unwriten_a tradition_n and_o fond_a revelation_n even_o as_o you_o do_v for_o all_o the_o world_n not_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n which_o you_o call_v papistical_a but_o by_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n for_o even_o like_o you_o my_o master_n do_v valentinus_n &_o his_o fellow_n begin_v the_o reform_a church_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o correction_n of_o all_o the_o magistrate_n and_o father_n in_o time_n past_a say_v that_o they_o do_v abuse_v the_o people_n because_o that_o they_o teach_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v take_v flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o great_a error_n the_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v believe_v that_o he_o bring_v his_o body_n from_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o cause_v it_o to_o pass_v through_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n as_o the_o water_n do_v through_o the_o channel_n this_o gospel_n be_v very_o strange_a yet_o the_o say_v valentinus_n do_v not_o want_v scripture_n as_o you_o have_v to_o confirm_v it_o interpret_n it_o even_o as_o you_o do_v interpret_v here_o in_o france_n he_o do_v allege_v for_o his_o text_n the_o three_o of_o john_n where_o christ_n do_v say_v no_o person_n be_v ascend_v to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o do_v he_o maintain_v that_o see_v christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o descend_v from_o heaven_n that_o he_o take_v no_o flesh_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n nestorius_n another_o notable_a heretic_n do_v link_v his_o gospel_n to_o apollinaris_n opinion_n in_o this_o case_n separate_a the_o manhood_n from_o god_n and_o say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v call_v god_n for_o see_v say_v apollinaris_n that_o this_o man_n be_v descend_v from_o heaven_n it_o do_v follow_v that_o he_o take_v no_o flesh_n of_o the_o virgin_n &_o beside_o this_o christ_n saiethe_v 6._o saiethe_v joh._n 6._o i_o be_o descend_v from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v my_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n here_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v as_o one_o that_o be_v god_n for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o he_o will_v have_v no_o other_o well_o but_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n and_o so_o he_o do_v speak_v like_o a_o man_n and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v descend_v from_o heaven_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n this_o same_o valentinus_n do_v take_v the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o gospel_n to_o his_o advantage_n for_o the_o three_o authority_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n where_o saint_n paul_n say_v the_o first_o man_n be_v of_o earth_n earthly_a the_o second_o be_v of_o heaven_n heavenly_a the_o which_o passage_n or_o place_n be_v as_o fit_a to_o serve_v valentinus_n opinion_n as_o all_o the_o place_n that_o you_o and_o all_o those_o that_o hold_v your_o opinion_n can_v allege_v the_o xxv_o chapter_n another_o minister_n likewise_o call_v apollinaris_n follow_v after_o these_o send_v by_o the_o say_v master_n &_o yet_o according_a to_o his_o say_n he_o do_v preach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v reform_v which_o have_v believe_v that_o the_o two_o nature_n be_v contain_v in_o jesus_n christ_n &_o that_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v to_o believe_v as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 1_o of_o john_n that_o the_o word_n be_v indeed_o become_v flesh_n or_o convert_v into_o flesh_n and_o to_o confirm_v this_o he_o do_v allege_v the_o say_v place_n where_o s._n john_n do_v say_v and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n &_o when_o the_o catholic_n do_v reply_n against_o he_o say_v that_o the_o verb_n or_o word_n take_v flesh_n &_o not_o as_o touch_v the_o conversion_n of_o one_o substance_n into_o another_o he_o do_v fortify_v his_o gospel_n with_o another_o text_n where_o s._n john_n do_v write_v of_o the_o marriage_n at_o canaa_n where_o the_o water_n be_v change_v into_o wine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o touch_v the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o water_n which_o be_v turn_v into_o wine_n even_o so_o say_v he_o that_o it_o become_v at_o the_o very_a incarnation_n of_o christ_n allege_v that_o that_o we_o have_v say_v and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n arrius_n which_o be_v the_o most_o famous_a heretic_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v do_v pretend_v to_o verify_v another_o gospel_n &_o his_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v not_o take_v at_o his_o incarnation_n a_o perfect_a soul_n another_o man_n have_v but_o that_o he_o have_v only_o a_o body_n and_o that_o his_o divinity_n do_v supply_v the_o absence_n of_o his_o soul_n of_o this_o opinion_n be_v apollinaris_n theodorus_n mossnestenus_n and_o nestorius_n come_v after_o and_o they_o do_v blame_v the_o catholic_n church_n because_o it_o do_v teach_v the_o say_v union_n call_v as_o i_o have_v say_v hipostatique_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n and_o they_o do_v allege_v for_o their_o argument_n a_o very_a subtle_a reason_n the_o which_o be_v that_o god_n do_v inhabit_v within_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o he_o do_v within_o a_o temple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o grace_n and_o not_o by_o be_v unite_v together_o and_o therefore_o even_o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a folly_n to_o say_v that_o god_n be_v a_o temple_n that_o so_o it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n be_v a_o man_n this_o gospel_n do_v seem_v very_o new_a yet_o do_v not_o they_o want_v scripture_n to_o maintain_v it_o not_o it_o that_o be_v not_o because_o we_o have_v not_o plain_a place_n right_o allege_v for_o proof_n of_o our_o religion_n but_o that_o in_o god_n just_a judgement_n such_o as_o you_o have_v eye_n and_o you_o not_o and_o that_o more_o plain_a than_o ever_o i_o can_v see_v any_o place_n to_o maintain_v your_o heresy_n christ_n do_v say_v unto_o the_o jew_n 2._o jew_n joh._n 2._o undo_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v build_v it_o again_o he_o mean_v it_o by_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o body_n say_v s._n john_n then_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n &_o god_n be_v not_o his_o temple_n see_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o notable_a argument_n to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a man_n that_o be_v not_o use_v to_o read_v how_o the_o doctor_n expound_v these_o hard_a place_n and_o moreover_o they_o do_v allege_v s._n paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o colloss_n where_o he_o do_v say_v that_o the_o plenitude_n or_o fullness_n of_o divinity_n do_v dwell_v in_o jesus_n christ_n corporal_o they_o do_v allege_v this_o place_n great_o to_o their_o purpose_n to_o prove_v that_o god_n be_v e._n be_v in_o he_o as_o in_o leave_v out_o i_o thin_a e._n a_o temple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o grace_n &_o not_o be_v unite_v for_o the_o three_o place_n they_o take_v the_o 8._o of_o john_n where_o
of_o those_o man_n than_o we_o shall_v be_v this_o other_o way_n see_v therefore_o christ_n take_v this_o way_n himself_o both_o with_o the_o devil_n himself_o &_o with_o his_o chaplain_n both_o to_o confute_v their_o error_n &_o erroneous_a interpretation_n &_o to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n by_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o apostle_n send_v we_o either_o by_o word_n or_o their_o example_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n then_o or_o unto_o any_o other_o for_o resolution_n of_o the_o church_n or_o truth_n this_o way_n as_o the_o best_a &_o only_o way_n we_o think_v all_o christian_n bind_v to_o take_v and_o in_o so_o do_v let_v not_o any_o man_n despair_n but_o that_o through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v be_v enable_v to_o try_v the_o spirit_n &_o to_o discern_v who_o among_o all_o other_o allege_v the_o scripture_n soundly_o for_o we_o see_v it_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o our_o god_n to_o reveile_v his_o truth_n and_o the_o mystery_n thereof_o to_o those_o that_o be_v he_o how_o simple_a soever_o when_o he_o do_v conceal_v &_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 11.1_o cor._n 1._o but_o you_o say_v if_o this_o may_v and_o must_v be_v attein_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n obtain_v of_o the_o lord_n by_o faithful_a invocation_n of_o his_o name_n how_o chance_v it_o that_o since_o luther_n for_o no_o ancient_a you_o say_v though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o false_a our_o religion_n be_v you_o have_v not_o obtain_v that_o holy_a ghost_n to_o end_v your_o hot_a contention_n and_o debate_n among_o yourselves_o that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v at_o unity_n yet_o among_o yourselves_o this_o be_v speak_v as_o though_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o either_o we_o have_v not_o faithful_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o his_o spirit_n or_o else_o if_o we_o have_v that_o then_o of_o necessity_n there_o neither_o can_v be_v nor_o will_v be_v any_o difference_n of_o opinion_n and_o contention_n at_o all_o among_o us._n if_o you_o be_v of_o this_o mind_n then_o the_o manifold_a difference_n schism_n sect_n &_o variety_n of_o opinion_n that_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v in_o your_o church_n as_o i_o have_v note_v cap._n 4._o argue_v in_o your_o logic_n that_o your_o church_n never_o yet_o pray_v faithful_o and_o effectual_o for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o indeed_o your_o argument_n be_v naught_o for_o it_o appear_v joh._n 17._o that_o christ_n himself_o pray_v for_o unity_n among_o his_o apostle_n and_o all_o that_o shall_v believe_v their_o doctrine_n &_o no_o doubt_n of_o it_o he_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o he_o pray_v for_o heb._n 5.7_o and_o obtain_v for_o his_o heavenly_a father_n will_v deny_v he_o nothing_o and_o yet_o you_o have_v hear_v cap_n 4._o after_o this_o there_o be_v variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o hot_a contention_n betwixt_o some_o of_o they_o that_o doubtless_o of_o both_o part_n be_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o christ_n prayer_n and_o therefore_o that_o prayer_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n make_v to_o that_o end_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o take_v place_n and_o to_o be_v effectual_a in_o that_o there_o be_v so_o much_o unity_n among_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n attein_v thereby_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o hold_v they_o together_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o be_v if_o they_o join_v together_o in_o hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n though_o otherwise_o there_o be_v difference_n and_o h●at_a contention_n sometime_o among_o they_o and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v as_o you_o seem_v to_o take_v it_o that_o such_o prayer_n either_o be_v not_o effectual_o make_v or_o else_o there_o must_v follow_v thereupon_o simple_o a_o universal_a accord_n in_o all_o thing_n for_o than_o christ_n prayer_n be_v not_o effectual_a in_o that_o after_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v at_o a●arre_n act._n 15._o etc._n etc._n that_o unity_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n may_v strive_v for_o here_o but_o she_o be_v not_o to_o make_v her_o account_n to_o attain_v unto_o it_o before_o she_o come_v in_o heaven_n and_o be_v marry_v to_o her_o husband_n there_o and_o so_o much_o unity_n there_o be_v betwixt_o we_o and_o those_o who_o we_o count_v member_n of_o christ_n church_n with_o we_o as_o that_o though_o there_o be_v some_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o also_o contention_n but_o too_o much_o yet_o we_o join_v so_o together_o here_o in_o the_o foundation_n and_o other_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n that_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o lord_n have_v hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o grant_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o that_o one_o day_n we_o hope_v in_o heaven_n all_o to_o join_v together_o in_o perfect_a unity_n notwithstanding_o the_o jar_n that_o otherwise_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o try_v we_o withal_o be_v find_v among_o us._n you_o know_v we_o pray_v daily_o that_o god_n will_v may_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o so_o do_v you_o or_o you_o be_v to_o blame_v and_o herein_o we_o hope_v we_o be_v hear_v and_o yet_o simple_o we_o never_o find_v nor_o shall_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n stand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o do_v here_o as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o continual_o there_o be_v disobedience_n to_o his_o will_n here_o in_o one_o thing_n or_o other_o one_o way_n or_o other_o even_o among_o the_o best_a but_o in_o that_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o god_n see_v this_o fit_a to_o be_v obtain_v here_o he_o grant_v it_o we_o be_v notwithstanding_o to_o think_v our_o prayer_n effectual_a christ_n himself_o pray_v john_n 17.15_o to_o deliver_v his_o church_n from_o evil_a and_o yet_o though_o that_o prayer_n be_v hear_v in_o that_o god_n so_o far_o forth_o preserve_v his_o church_n from_o evil_a as_o he_o see_v it_o expedient_a for_o the_o state_n thereof_o here_o we_o see_v daily_o that_o many_o be_v the_o trouble_n and_o evil_n that_o the_o poor_a church_n be_v encumber_v withal_o and_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o faithful_a prayer_n of_o god_n saint_n be_v to_o be_v account_v effectual_a though_o the_o thing_n they_o pray_v for_o be_v not_o obtain_v in_o full_a perfection_n here_o as_o long_o as_o so_o much_o here_o be_v obtain_v as_o the_o lord_n see_v to_o be_v necessary_a and_o convenient_a for_o the_o estate_n of_o his_o servant_n so_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o difference_n among_o we_o you_o may_v and_o will_v if_o you_o have_v the_o grace_n join_v rather_o with_o we_o in_o our_o religion_n then_o continue_v in_o that_o wherein_o you_o be_v the_o professor_n whereof_o be_v tear_v a_o sunder_o with_o more_o and_o great_a difference_n than_o the_o church_n that_o receive_v we_o be_v howsoever_o you_o deceive_v the_o simple_a with_o the_o vizarde_n of_o unity_n in_o that_o you_o join_v together_o under_o your_o pope_n against_o the_o truth_n the_o xxviii_o chapter_n now_o to_o turn_v again_o to_o our_o former_a purpose_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o of_o our_o own_o free_a deliberation_n we_o be_v mind_v to_o forsake_v our_o catholic_a religion_n you_o religion_n if_o you_o shall_v be_v of_o no_o religion_n while_o all_o of_o one_o be_v full_a of_o one_o mind●_n you_o must_v die_v a_o nullifidian_n i_o warrant_v you_o the_o injurious_a disputation_n that_o you_o use_v among_o yourselves_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n without_o leave_v to_o any_o of_o both_o party_n until_o that_o we_o can_v see_v more_o resolute_a in_o your_o opinion_n be_v the_o barde_a matter_n the_o know_v in_o what_o country_n the_o residence_n shall_v be_v keep_v for_o that_o matter_n seem_v matter_n where_o &_o when_o nay_o our_o absolute_a sentence_n i●_n as_o our_o book_n do_v testify_v and_o we_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o your_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n be_v but_o new_a &_o a_o very_a young_a ●●ng_v in_o comparison_n of_o that_o you_o will_v here_o have_v it_o seem_v you_o have_v give_v absolute_a sentence_n say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v err_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o this_o present_a in_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a constitute_v in_o a_o three_o place_n call_v purgatory_n you_o shall_v i_o think_v at_o the_o least_o allow_v a_o three_o place_n although_o it_o be_v not_o that_o to_o receive_v the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o conscience_n you_o have_v so_o trouble_v that_o they_o know_v now_o neither_o what_o be_v their_o faith_n nor_o of_o what_o religion_n they_o shall_v be_v of_o be_v such_o unsettled_a and_o unstable_a person_n for_o all_o your_o foolish_a
yet_o without_o fruit_n to_o the_o receiver_n the_o benefit_n indeed_o arise_v by_o his_o presence_n only_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o communicant_a the_o matter_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a moment_n &_o weight_n as_o that_o either_o you_o shall_v need_v to_o make_v such_o a_o do_v about_o or_o that_o the_o maintainer_n thereof_o shall_v need_v to_o strive_v so_o eager_o for_o which_o i_o hope_v god_n will_v in_o his_o good_a time_n reveal_v unto_o they_o and_o so_o make_v they_o to_o give_v over_o their_o contention_n and_o to_o grow_v into_o unity_n in_o this_o matter_n with_o their_o brethren_n i_o can_v but_o tell_v you_o yet_o before_o i_o end_v this_o chapter_n that_o you_o very_o great_o belie_v we_o when_o you_o write_v that_o we_o have_v give_v absolute_a sentence_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v err_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o this_o present_a in_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a constitute_v in_o a_o three_o place_n call_v purgatory_n for_o both_o your_o devyse_n of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o soul_n there_o we_o say_v and_o constant_o defend_v to_o be_v but_o popish_a devise_n find_v out_o and_o ground_v but_o upon_o humane_a reason_n dream_n and_o fond_a vision_n and_o apparition_n and_o neither_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n at_o least_o after_o christ_n tertullian_n be_v the_o first_o and_o that_o in_o a_o book_n write_v by_o he_o when_o he_o be_v a_o montanist_n that_o make_v any_o mention_n towards_o the_o allowance_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o until_o the_o florentine_a council_n the_o greek_a church_n can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o you_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o you_o as_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v more_o for_o your_o credit_n and_o honesty_n to_o have_v spare_v this_o your_o merry_a conceit_n and_o pleasant_a devise_n of_o wish_v we_o though_o we_o refuse_v your_o purgatory_n to_o provide_v a_o third_o place_n for_o they_o who_o our_o contention_n make_v constant_a on_o neither_o side_n for_o either_o if_o you_o have_v be_v wise_a you_o will_v have_v utter_v that_o your_o conceit_n with_o more_o truth_n in_o your_o first_o entrance_n into_o it_o or_o else_o you_o will_v have_v let_v it_o alone_o for_o altogether_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n it_o do_v appear_v well_o by_o that_o that_o i_o have_v say_v how_o the_o assurance_n of_o your_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n be_v but_o found_v upon_o sand_n for_o asmuch_o as_o you_o do_v seek_v particulerlie_o a_o contrary_a meaning_n every_o one_o to_o his_o own_o particular_a sense_n be_v not_o this_o the_o way_n that_o a_o extraordinary_a minister_n send_v from_o god_n shall_v use_v to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n for_o this_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o all_o old_a heretic_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a difference_n between_o set_v forth_o the_o scripture_n to_o refourme_v one_o religion_n and_o to_o reform_v one_o condition_n for_o when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n of_o the_o refourm_v of_o one_o manner_n sense_n manner_n good_a stuff_n by_o this_o divinity_n than_o man_n may_v by_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o apostle_n take_v the_o scripture_n in_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sense_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o regard_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v new_a or_o old_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v let_v every_o man_n take_v it_o to_o his_o own_o sense_n but_o when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v talk_v of_o as_o touch_v one_o faith_n the_o catholic_a ought_v great_o to_o beware_v of_o be_v of_o and_o such_o be_v all_o they_o whosoever_o make_v they_o that_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o wh●ch_a kind_n your_o popish_a interpretation_n be_v singular_a interpretation_n and_o to_o hold_v they_o as_o very_o suspicious_a 〈◊〉_d suspicious_a if_o this_o rule_n be_v receive_v and_o follow_v your_o popery_n will_v be_v find_v new_a devise_n and_o will_v you_o will_v you_o you_o shall_v become_v all_o one_o with_o 〈◊〉_d he_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o sentence_n that_o be_v hold_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n without_o make_v any_o account_n of_o all_o these_o new_a devise_n for_o even_o as_o when_o one_o will_v repair_v a_o old_a house_n he_o dare_v commit_v it_o to_o any_o mason_n although_o his_o cunning_n be_v but_o small_a but_o if_o the_o foundation_n must_v be_v touch_v he_o will_v seek_v the_o best_a master_n he_o can_v find_v even_o so_o when_o one_o will_v correct_v i_o for_o my_o evil_a life_n or_o condition_n although_o that_o it_o be_v so_o that_o he_o that_o seek_v to_o reform_v i_o be_v not_o of_o the_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o allege_v to_o i_o some_o place_n or_o figure_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o altogether_o to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o all_o this_o aught_o to_o turn_v to_o i_o to_o one_o effect_n for_o i_o know_v his_o meaning_n although_o he_o can_v well_o express_v it_o the_o which_o be_v to_o have_v i_o change_v my_o naughty_a life_n and_o to_o leave_v my_o ill_a condition_n ground_v condition_n but_o all_o the_o pack_n of_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v ●opery_n to_o be_v thus_o ground_v but_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o touch_v my_o faith_n and_o to_o persuade_v i_o from_o that_o that_o all_o my_o ancetour_n do_v ever_o hold_v from_o that_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_v and_o from_o that_o that_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n teach_v and_o affirm_v in_o the_o repair_n of_o this_o foundation_n i_o ought_v to_o trust_v none_o but_o even_o the_o very_o best_a i_o mean_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o all_o these_o that_o i_o have_v name_v and_o now_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o may_v all_o err_v i_o pray_v remember_v the_o old_a proverb_n that_o say_v he_o be_v a_o fool_n that_o think_v that_o he_o only_o be_v wise_a and_o all_o the_o other_o fool_n &_o that_o it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n that_o one_o only_o shall_v err_v than_o one_o great_a multitude_n for_o as_o they_o say_v common_o two_o eye_n see_v more_o than_o one_o and_o four_o more_o than_o two_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n what_o you_o have_v gain_v by_o all_o you_o have_v hitherto_o write_v to_o disprove_v either_o our_o vocation_n or_o religion_n for_o all_o your_o great_a brag_n here_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n by_o weigh_v together_o your_o objection_n and_o my_o answer_n now_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v unto_o who_o i_o doubt_v not_o your_o brag_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v and_o will_v well_o appear_v that_o both_o may_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v yet_o say_v the_o only_a new_a thing_n that_o you_o set_v down_o in_o this_o chapter_n be_v this_o that_o the_o former_a variety_n among_o they_o that_o allege_v scripture_n consider_v you_o allow_v well_o that_o one_o shall_v listen_v to_o mean_a man_n allege_v scripture_n though_o not_o very_o apt_o to_o reform_v manner_n withal_o but_o when_o they_o be_v allege_v to_o teach_v faith_n than_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o catholic_a man_n trust_v none_o but_o the_o best_a and_o those_o allege_v they_o according_a to_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o all_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o therefore_o you_o write_v that_o the_o catholic_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o singular_a interpretation_n that_o he_o must_v follow_v the_o sentence_n hold_v &_o teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n &_o not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v persuade_v from_o that_o faith_n that_o all_o his_o ancetour_n do_v ever_o hold_v the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v the_o scripture_n general_a counsel_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n do_v teach_v in_o which_o case_n if_o one_o shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v wise_a than_o all_o these_o you_o will_v have_v he_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n account_v a_o fool_n that_o think_v himself_o only_o wise_a and_o all_o other_o fool_n because_o in_o reason_n it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o one_o shall_v err_v than_o all_o these_o etc._n etc._n be_v it_o that_o all_o this_o be_v very_o true_a what_o have_v you_o win_v hereby_o against_o we_o for_o neither_o shall_v you_o ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o we_o have_v often_o tell_v you_o that_o your_o religion_n be_v that_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n nor_o your_o church_n to_o be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n nor_o that_o your_o church_n have_v either_o the_o scripture_n general_a counsel_n or_o
be_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n why_o you_o shall_v count_v from_o that_o year_n for_o neither_o daniel_n word_n will_v bear_v it_o neither_o yet_o the_o true_a account_n of_o the_o time_n from_o thence_o to_o christ_n death_n for_o that_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o world_n 3354_o and_o he_o suff●ed_v anno._n 3996._o as_o functius_n calculate_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o mention_n in_o dan_n of_o 72._o week_n but_o of_o 70_o &_o of_o number_n whereinto_o he_o devide_v that_o beside_o it_o seem_v that_o your_o arithmetic_n or_o wit_n be_v very_o slender_a to_o reckon_v 72._o weeke●_n that_o be_v so_o ma●y_v time_n 7._o year_n to_o be_v just_a five_o hundred_o when_o as_o if_o you_o account_v again_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o your_o number_n be_v not_o so_o just_a by_o 4._o as_o you_o will_v see_v for_o 72._o time_n 7._o make_v 504._o a_o sha●efull_a learned_a man_n sure_a you_o have_v show_v yourself_o here_o but_o he_o do_v assign_v the_o very_a time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o seventy_o two_o week_n count_v from_o the_o four_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o zedechias_n until_o the_o time_n that_o our_o saviour_n be_v na●●ed_v upon_o the_o cross_n the_o which_o time_n be_v just_a 5._o hundred_o year_n then_o see_v that_o christ_n come_v at_o the_o very_a prescribe_a time_n he_o may_v well_o have_v say_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o scripture_n do_v bear_v witness_n of_o he_o but_o yet_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n if_o he_o have_v do_v no_o other_o but_o this_o he_o have_v not_o full_o approve_v his_o vocation_n to_o condemn_v their_o incredulity_n for_o they_o may_v have_v say_v unto_o he_o we_o know_v well_o that_o by_o the_o say_n of_o the_o old_a prophet_n the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v of_o the_o line_n of_o jacob_n about_o this_o time_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o sceptre_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v take_v from_o the_o line_n of_o juda_n to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o herod_n but_o what_o though_o be_v this_o a_o good_a consequence_n unbelief_n consequence_n but_o now_o that_o t●is_n point_n be_v sufficient_o confirm_v already_o &_o so_o also_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o he_o and_o his_o apostle_n therefore_o now_o to_o refuse_v to_o believe_v the_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o prove_v the_o same_o again_o by_o miracle_n which_o be_v your_o dea●ing_n with_o we_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n of_o unbelief_n the_o messia●_n ought_v to_o come_v about_o this_o time_n therefore_o it_o be_v i_o no_o no_o show_v we_o your_o commission_n let_v we_o see_v some_o sign_n how_o we_o shall_v know_v it_o for_o if_o we_o shall_v receive_v you_o as_o our_o king_n it_o may_v be_v that_o some_o other_o will_v come_v and_o crave_v the_o like_a say_v that_o we_o be_v abuse_v our_o saviour_n christ_n sore_o fear_v this_o objection_n to●ke_v another_o witness_n with_o he_o beside_o the_o scripture_n i_o mean_v his_o miracle_n the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v say_v 5._o say_v john_n 5._o christ_n in_o the_o name_n of_o my_o father_n bear_v witness_n of_o i_o the_o like_a proof_n be_v make_v when_o s._n joh._n 11._o joh._n mat._n 11._o baptist_n send_v his_o disciple_n to_o our_o saviour_n to_o have_v he_o teach_v the_o true_a belief_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v in_o he_o this_o question_n be_v put_v to_o he_o be_v thou_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v or_o ought_v we_o to_o attend_v for_o some_o other_o go_v your_o way_n say_v christ_n and_o tell_v john_n what_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v the_o blind_a receive_v their_o sight_n the_o lame_a do_v walk_v upright_o the_o dumb_a speak_v the_o deaf_a hear_v the_o leper_n be_v cure_v the_o dead_a be_v raise_v again_o and_o the_o poor_a be_v preach_v unto_o the_o which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o tell_v john_n that_o i_o be_o the_o true_a messiah_n &_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o attend_v ●●_o other_o i_o do_v verify_v my_o doctrine_n both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o miracle_n for_o first_o esay_n do_v write_v that_o when_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v do_v the_o miracle_n above_o mention_v then_o see_v that_o i_o have_v do_v they_o in_o your_o presence_n it_o follow_v that_o i_o be_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v thus_o you_o see_v sir_n that_o both_o the_o more_o the_o and_o by_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o same_o miracle_n we_o justify_v our_o vocation_n and_o religion_n what_o will_v you_o have_v more_o scripture_n and_o miracle_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n among_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v never_o hard_a of_o belief_n than_o we_o be_v according_a to_o your_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o blame_v we_o not_o if_o we_o send_v you_o pack_v like_o cogger_n of_o the_o scripture_n 7._o scripture_n but_o they_o do_v 2._o thess_n 2._o &_o apoc_n 14._o vers_fw-la 8.6_o and_o 7._o the_o which_o do_v neither_o bear_v witness_n of_o your_o come_n nor_o yet_o do_v any_o miracle_n the_o which_o two_o thing_n and_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v we_o believe_v your_o reform_a gospel_n the_o xxx_o chapter_n the_o drift_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o warrant_v his_o vocation_n &_o doctrine_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o by_o miracle_n which_o i_o grant_v you_o prove_v sufficient_o whereupon_o you_o will_v conclude_v that_o we_o account_v you_o as_o hard_o of_o belief_n as_o ever_o be_v the_o jew_n therefore_o we_o shall_v prove_v our_o call_n and_o religion_n unto_o you_o by_o both_o whereas_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o say_v we_o can_v do_v neither_o and_o so_o be_v to_o be_v send_v pack_v like_o cogger_n only_o of_o the_o scripture_n whither_o the_o scripture_n give_v testimony_n unto_o our_o religion_n or_o no._n i_o refer_v to_o the_o reader_n to_o judge_v by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v write_v already_o &_o by_o that_o we_o have_v write_v from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o our_o book_n make_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o concern_v our_o vocation_n and_o calling_n i_o trust_v i_o have_v sufficient_o confirm_v that_o by_o they_o also_o in_o that_o i_o have_v show_v our_o calling_n to_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o call_n of_o true_a pastor_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o if_o further_o you_o require_v a_o more_o special_a testimony_n from_o thence_o of_o our_o come_n by_o our_o call_n i_o send_v you_o now_o to_o 2._o thess_n 2.8_o and_o revel_v 14.6_o etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o god_n will_v towards_o the_o late_a end_n send_v his_o messenger_n again_o to_o consume_v antichrist_n and_o by_o preach_v the_o everlasting_a gospel_n to_o overthrow_n babylon_n and_o as_o touch_v miracle_n you_o have_v be_v answer_v sufficient_o already_o but_o that_o you_o complain_v not_o that_o we_o refuse_v to_o answer_v you_o as_o long_o as_o you_o can_v object_v any_o thing_n to_o this_o now_o allege_v i_o say_v that_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o christ_n to_o confirm_v his_o call_n by_o miracle_n because_o it_o be_v true_a as_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o esay_n that_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v work_v miracle_n when_o he_o come_v &_o so_o also_o it_o be_v necessary_a once_o to_o establish_v and_o confirm_v the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o his_o person_n the_o cease_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n law_n and_o other_o such_o new_a &_o strange_a thing_n as_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n bring_v with_o it_o both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o reason_n you_o can_v show_v why_o we_o shall_v work_v miracle_n now_o to_o confirm_v our_o vocation_n or_o religion_n by_o to_o you_o for_o neither_o be_v it_o prophesy_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n shall_v bring_v antichrist_n to_o consumption_n or_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n to_o her_o fall_n by_o work_v of_o miracle_n but_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mouth_n breathe_v in_o his_o everlasting_a gospel_n the_o force_n whereof_o in_o our_o ministry_n you_o perceive_v daily_a to_o be_v such_o that_o it_o be_v even_o a_o miracle_n and_o wonder_n unto_o you_o to_o see_v in_o how_o short_a time_n it_o have_v prevail_v and_o prevail_v still_o against_o your_o kingdom_n do_v you_o what_o you_o can_v to_o let_v it_o neither_o need_v those_o thing_n so_o notable_o once_o confirm_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o we_o teach_v to_o be_v for_o your_o sake_n confirm_v again_o though_o you_o be_v never_o so_o hard_o heart_v the_o word_n write_v and_o the_o miracle_n therein_o record_v already_o must_v serve_v the_o turn_n to_o convert_v you_o to_o our_o religion_n therein_o teach_v and_o
thereby_o sufficient_o ratify_v or_o else_o gibe_v at_o it_o howsoever_o here_o you_o shall_v one_o day_n to_o your_o smart_n i_o fear_v find_v yourselves_o to_o be_v without_o all_o excuse_n one_o trick_n of_o your_o learning_n yet_o i_o may_v not_o forget_v which_o you_o have_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n which_o be_v this_o that_o allege_v this_o say_n of_o christ_n search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o be_v they_o that_o testify_v of_o i_o you_o note_v that_o he_o say_v not_o they_o be_v judge_n but_o they_o bearewitnes_n of_o i_o which_o you_o tell_v we_o be_v two_o different_a thing_n this_o be_v by_o the_o way_n to_o give_v we_o a_o blow_n that_o will_v have_v no_o other_o judge_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o what_o end_n will_v you_o have_v the_o scripture_n but_o to_o stand_v at_o the_o bar_n as_o witness_n true_o that_o your_o pope_n and_o your_o church_n may_v sit_v on_o the_o bench_n as_o judge_n to_o give_v sentence_n as_o it_o please_v they_o whatsoever_o the_o witness_n depose_v but_o what_o little_a reason_n there_o be_v therein_o nay_o what_o blasphemy_n that_o savour_v of_o you_o &_o every_o man_n may_v learn_v by_o the_o certain_a &_o infallible_a truth_n always_o witness_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o one_o &_o of_o the_o manifold_a error_n judge_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o other_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o mark_v to_o see_v how_o still_o it_o grieve_v you_o that_o the_o scripture_n or_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n shall_v sit_v above_o your_o pope_n &_o you_o to_o check_v &_o control_v your_o do_n and_o how_o fain_o you_o will_v bring_v they_o under_o to_o be_v judge_v &_o overrule_v by_o you_o but_o to_o answer_v this_o your_o objection_n you_o must_v be_v put_v in_o remembrance_n that_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o witness_n but_o one_o &_o selfsame_o man_n may_v be_v both_o a_o witness_n &_o a_o judge_n &_o that_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o force_n in_o this_o word_n witness_n here_o to_o drive_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o bar_n to_o stand_v but_o among_o witness_n there_o be_v as_o great_a force_n in_o the_o word_n judge_n in_o another_o place_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o bench_n again_o to_o sit_v as_o judge_v remember_v yourself_o therefore_o that_o the_o same_o christ_n that_o say_v here_o that_o the_o scripture_n bear_v witness_n of_o he_o say_v joh._n 12.48_o to_o such_o as_o you_o be_v he_o that_o refuse_v i_o &_o receive_v not_o my_o word_n have_v one_o that_o judge_v he_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v he_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o never_o disdain_v you_o that_o the_o scripture_n that_o bare_a witness_n to_o christ_n sit_v as_o judge_n over_o you_o and_o your_o do_n if_o you_o do_v the_o will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n for_o christ_n have_v tell_v you_o what_o you_o shall_v trust_v to_o if_o you_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n here_o you_o shall_v one_o day_n will_v you_o will_v you_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o to_o your_o smart_n elsewhere_o wherefore_o howsoever_o in_o the_o end_n of_o your_o former_a chap._n you_o count_v he_o a_o fool_n &_o to_o be_v reject_v that_o counsel_v you_o to_o leave_v that_o which_o you_o take_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n confirm_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n &_o general_a counsel_n if_o he_o bring_v scripture_n indeed_o on_o his_o side_n you_o will_v prove_v most_o fool_n if_o you_o believe_v he_o not_o this_o your_o gerson_n see_v &_o therefore_o he_o have_v write_v that_o there_o be_v more_o credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o one_o man_n learn_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v thenof_o his_o side_n then_o either_o to_o the_o pope_n sentence_n or_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o your_o abbot_n panormitan_n ad_fw-la canonen_fw-mi titulo_fw-la de_fw-la electionibus_fw-la have_v the_o like_a say_n but_o indeed_o while_o we_o labour_v to_o draw_v you_o from_o your_o error_n to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o our_o religion_n we_o do_v not_o persuade_v you_o from_o that_o but_o to_o that_o indeed_o which_o our_o ancestor_n who_o we_o may_v safe_o follow_v the_o patriarch_n prophet_n christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o and_o which_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v by_o her_o sound_n and_o faithful_a pastor_n &_o lawful_a synod_n and_o counsel_n ever_o since_o unto_o this_o day_n teach_v us._n this_o we_o be_v sure_o be_v true_a for_o we_o find_v ourselves_o able_a by_o the_o scripture_n the_o sound_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n &_o the_o chronicle_n of_o all_o time_n &_o age_n to_o prove_v and_o justify_v it_o to_o be_v so_o against_o all_o gainsayers_a and_o therefore_o i_o will_v wish_v you_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o sentence_n of_o this_o judge_n the_o scripture_n though_o you_o labour_v never_o so_o much_o to_o bereave_v they_o of_o that_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n among_o you_o that_o neither_o lack_n of_o miracle_n work_v by_o we_o nor_o the_o glorious_a dumb_a show_n of_o catholic_a faith_n catholic_a church_n ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n etc._n etc._n hold_v you_o any_o long_o from_o join_v hand_n with_o us._n for_o to_o pretend_v all_o these_o never_o so_o much_o will_v no_o more_o excuse_v you_o from_o fall_v under_o the_o sentence_n of_o this_o judge_n than_o the_o like_a do_v your_o predecessor_n the_o high_a priest_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o christ_n time_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o such_o false_o pretend_a argument_n keep_v themselves_o back_o from_o yield_v unto_o the_o same_o religion_n then_o preach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o their_o utter_a destruction_n the_o lord_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n open_v your_o eye_n in_o time_n and_o give_v you_o once_o grace_n in_o simplicity_n of_o heart_n to_o search_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n in_o his_o write_v word_n and_o to_o leave_v deceive_v of_o yourselves_o &_o other_o with_o these_o sound_v and_o swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n amen_o your_o childish_a and_o gross_a oversight_n &_o ignorance_n by_o the_o way_n show_v about_o daniel_n 70._o week_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v most_o pitiful_a for_o whereas_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o 70_o you_o say_v he_o do_v speak_v of_o 72_o &_o those_o you_o count_v to_o contain_v less_o year_n by_o 4._o then_o they_o do_v and_o contrary_a to_o all_o truth_n of_o story_n &_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o angel_n chapter_n 9_o set_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n you_o appoint_v they_o their_o beginning_n before_o the_o captivity_n whereas_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n begin_v after_o the_o xxxi_o chapter_n you_o cause_n you_o but_o not_o alone_a fo●_n especial_o we_o comfort_v ourselves_o in_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o cause_n do_v allege_v the_o invincible_a patience_n of_o your_o holy_a martyr_n in_o time_n past_a for_o at_o this_o present_a if_o it_o please_v god_n that_o you_o do_v martyrizate_v no_o more_o soul_n with_o your_o false_a preach_n then_o there_o be_v body_n that_o suffer_v for_o your_o doctrine_n your_o sect_n be_v nothing_o so_o dangerous_a as_o it_o be_v you_o glory_n in_o your_o martyr_n of_o time_n past_a which_o have_v seal_v with_o their_o own_o blood_n the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o holy_a city_n geneva_n but_o in_o this_o you_o be_v much_o deceive_v for_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o first_o oration_n against_o the_o jew_n do_v say_v that_o the_o pain_n do_v not_o make_v the_o martyr_n but_o the_o cause_n for_o otherwise_o the_o thief_n &_o murderer_n may_v claim_v the_o like_a title_n although_o they_o suffer_v for_o another_o cause_n for_o we_o honour_n and_o love_v the_o martyr_n say_v he_o not_o for_o the_o torment_n that_o they_o do_v suffer_v but_o for_o that_o it_o be_v for_o christ_n &_o that_o they_o suffer_v for_o justice_n martyr_n justice_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n there_o turn_v the_o place_n who_o list_n yet_o i_o de●●_n not_o but_o in_o some_o other_o place_n he_o may_v write_v so_o but_o no_o where_o against_o such_o as_o we_o but_o rather_o against_o such_o as_o common_o your_o fellow_n be_v here_o in_o england_n who_o die_v for_o it_o e●s●n_o yet_o you_o will_v canonize_v for_o holy_a martyr_n and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n contra_fw-la epistolam_fw-la parmeni●ni_fw-la cap._n septimo_fw-la write_v against_o some_o of_o your_o fellow_n that_o presume_v to_o be_v martyr_n he_o do_v say_v that_o every_o one_o be_v not_o a_o martyr_n that_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o emperor_n or_o by_o the_o king_n for_o matter_n of_o religion_n otherwise_o say_v he_o the_o devil_n may_v attribute_v unto_o themselves_o the_o glory_n of_o martyrdom_n because_o they_o suffer_v persecution_n at_o the_o christian_a emperor_n hand_n when_o throughout_o the_o world_n their_o idol_n be_v
to_o escape_v this_o &_o 1000_o more_o such_o contrariety_n betwixt_o your_o doctrine_n and_o the_o reveil_v will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o subtle_a sophistry_n fond_a quiddity_n and_o distinction_n devise_v of_o your_o own_o head_n without_o all_o warrant_n and_o ground_n from_o thence_o which_o in_o matter_n and_o question_n of_o divinity_n be_v intolerable_a these_o and_o such_o like_a contrariety_n betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o prelate_n and_o the_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v oft_o observe_v and_o tell_v they_o of_o and_o yet_o find_v they_o most_o obstinate_o to_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o have_v cause_v we_o rather_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n to_o call_v they_o wolf_n they_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o negligence_n only_a heretic_n and_o for_o this_o same_o cause_n see_v all_o you_o be_v thus_o infect_v you_o wish_v we_o in_o vain_a to_o join_v some_o of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o with_o some_o of_o the_o best_a of_o we_o to_o reform_v thing_n amiss_o in_o both_o for_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o any_o good_a reformation_n at_o all_o where_o any_o such_o as_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v therein_o and_o see_v it_o be_v and_o have_v be_v so_o common_a a_o thing_n with_o we_o as_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a if_o you_o have_v read_v any_o of_o our_o book_n write_v against_o you_o to_o deny_v that_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o you_o at_o the_o first_o yea_o seeing_z you_o all_o know_v that_o we_o count_v your_o synagogue_n antichristian_a for_o her_o manifold_a apostasy_n from_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v first_o unto_o the_o roman_n i_o wonder_v with_o what_o face_n or_o forehead_n you_o can_v write_v as_o you_o do_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o we_o ourselves_o can_v deny_v if_o we_o will_v confess_v the_o truth_n but_o that_o you_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v first_o preach_v unto_o you_o and_o therefore_o not_o only_o for_o your_o lewdness_n of_o life_n and_o negligent_a shepherd_n &_o bad_a sheep_n do_v your_o kingdom_n decay_n as_o you_o will_v insinuate_v but_o especial_o for_o this_o also_o that_o in_o the_o point_v we_o strive_v with_o you_o about_o you_o be_v quite_o go_v from_o the_o ancient_a sound_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n first_o teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o receive_v and_o continue_v many_o year_n in_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n &_o other_o the_o only_a way_n therefore_o for_o you_o be_v to_o prevent_v a_o utter_a &_o universal_a subversion_n and_o confusion_n first_o to_o return_v again_o from_o your_o new_a antichristian_a religion_n &_o doctrine_n to_o the_o true_a ancient_a &_o catholic_a faith_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o to_o amend_v your_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o same_o the_o xxxvii_o chapter_n all_o our_o ancient_a doctor_n will_n doctor_n this_o be_v but_o a_o arrogant_a false_a brag_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v come_v to_o particular_n when_o you_o will_n as_o well_o of_o the_o greek_a as_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o christian_n of_o all_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v in_o those_o day_n mean_v day_n christian_n have_v always_o vow_v and_o promise_v lawful_a thing_n only_o to_o god_n &_o they_o have_v have_v a_o care_n to_o make_v those_o vow_n and_o promise_n discreet_o &_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o see_v he_o have_v make_v possible_a unto_o they_o which_o thing_n be_v neglect_v in_o the_o vow_n that_o i_o fear_v you_o most_o mean_v have_v make_v their_o promise_n and_o vow_n unto_o god_n even_o as_o we_o do_v now_o and_o at_o their_o baptism_n they_o do_v use_v even_o those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o we_o do_v with_o the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o annoynting_n that_o we_o do_v use_v in_o our_o catholic_a church_n which_o you_o call_v papistical_a and_o to_o prove_v this_o true_a we_o will_v bring_v the_o say_v ancient_a doctor_n as_o witness_n if_o it_o please_v you_o to_o read_v the_o chapter_n the_o never_o man_n have_v worse_a hap_n in_o quote_v so_o few_o place_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n place_n that_o we_o will_v quote_v tertullian_n who_o live_v very_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v make_v mention_n in_o his_o book_n that_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-fr resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la of_o the_o anoint_v use_v at_o the_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o renounce_v the_o devil_n &_o all_o his_o pomp_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la he_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o three_o dip_v under_o the_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n who_o be_v above_o 1300._o year_n ago_o do_v write_v in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o his_o epistle_n epist_n 12._o how_o they_o do_v use_v in_o his_o time_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a chrism_n unto_o the_o child_n that_o be_v baptize_v origen_n in_o his_o twelve_o homily_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o renounce_n of_o the_o devil_n at_o one_o baptism_n &_o of_o the_o make_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o child_n face_n when_o they_o be_v christen_v s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 12._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n cap._n 4._o and_o in_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n he_o do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o say_v renunciation_n make_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n read_v i_o pray_v if_o it_o be_v your_o pleasure_n s._n aug._n in_o psal_n 31._o aug._n li_n 15._o contra_fw-la julia._n pelag._n li._n 1._o ca._n 2._o item_n de_fw-fr nuptiis_fw-la &_o concupiscentia_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 20._o in_o joannem_fw-la tract_n 33._o in_o canonicam_fw-la joannis_n tract_n 3._o &_o tractat_fw-la 6._o et_fw-fr de_fw-fr eccle_n dogmat_fw-la cap._n 31._o de_fw-fr simbolo_fw-it lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o &_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o et_fw-la libro_fw-la de_fw-fr his_o qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la sacris_fw-la cap._n 1._o basilius_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it cap._n 15._o &_o 27._o arnobius_n in_o psalm_n 75._o all_o these_o doctor_n which_o be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o if_o you_o read_v in_o they_o the_o place_n that_o here_o i_o have_v quote_v you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o do_v use_v at_o the_o baptism_n of_o their_o child_n those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o we_o do_v now_o use_v and_o that_o you_o do_v so_o mislike_v and_o as_o for_o confession_n before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n have_v authority_n to_o bind_v and_o forgive_v sin_n saint_n cyprian_n in_o his_o five_o sermon_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la origen_n upon_o the_o thirty_o and_o seven_o psalm_n and_o in_o levit._n hom._n 2._o saint_n augustine_n libro_fw-la 2._o the_o visitatione_n infirmorum_fw-la cap._n 4._o saint_n cyril_n libro_fw-la 12._o in_fw-la johannem_fw-la cap._n 56._o saint_n hierom_n in_o ecclesiast_fw-la cap._n 10._o all_o these_o doctor_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o these_o place_n do_v confirm_v auricular_a confession_n and_o as_o for_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o help_v we_o with_o their_o prayer_n read_v origen_n in_o his_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o canticle_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n upon_o job_n &_o his_o eight_o book_n in_o eccl._n read_v chrysostom_n in_o his_o eight_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o four_o chapter_n and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o twenty_o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o one_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n and_o saint_n hierom_n against_o vigilantius_n all_o these_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o pray_n unto_o the_o saint_n and_o for_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a read_v tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogonia_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la and_o saint_n cyprian_n ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnensem_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o epistle_n and_o origen_n in_o hieremiam_fw-la homil._n 12._o item_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n libro_fw-la 8._o cap._n 11._o read_v chrysostome_n in_o his_o third_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o philippian_n and_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la gen_fw-la against_o the_o manichee_n cap._n 20._o &_o in_o the_o encheridion_n ad_fw-la laurent_n cap._n 110._o item_n libro_fw-la de_fw-la cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la all_o these_o doctor_n who_o work_n have_v continue_v these_o 1200._o year_n do_v teach_v we_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o now_o we_o do_v observe_v the_o which_o
and_o ceremony_n note_v by_o he_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n insomuch_o that_o in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n not_o only_o he_o write_v that_o altogether_o true_o and_o in_o all_o observance_n of_o godly_a prayer_n two_o church_n can_v not_o be_v find_v that_o do_v full_o agree_v among_o themselves_o but_o also_o that_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o christian_n peace_n be_v preserve_v &_o maintain_v among_o they_o the_o like_a may_v be_v see_v in_o zozomen_n 7._o book_n &_o 29._o chapter_n your_o own_o tridentine_a catechiser_n of_o your_o parish_n priest_n can_v see_v as_o i_o note_v before_o that_o touch_v dip_v the_o party_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o water_n pour_v it_o upon_o he_o or_o sprinkle_v he_o with_o it_o so_o that_o every_o one_o follow_v therein_o that_o order_n that_o he_o see_v in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v it_o be_v not_o material_a which_o way_n be_v use_v for_o which_o of_o they_o soever_o be_v use_v so_o say_v he_o this_o sacrament_n may_v right_o be_v minister_v so_o much_o the_o stranger_n be_v it_o that_o both_o you_o here_o and_o he_o there_o &_o your_o whole_a tridentine_a council_n shall_v so_o peremtory_o seek_v to_o bind_v all_o church_n and_o person_n to_o the_o strict_a keep_n and_o observe_v of_o all_o your_o foresay_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o the_o ad_fw-la minister_a of_o the_o same_o further_n concern_v this_o point_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o for_o your_o pleasure_n i_o have_v turn_v to_o these_o place_n which_o you_o quote_v for_o this_o purpose_n as_o i_o find_v by_o compare_v of_o you_o with_o they_o that_o they_o mention_v you_o have_v many_o that_o they_o speak_v never_o a_o word_n of_o in_o these_o place_n as_o namely_o your_o consecrate_v of_o your_o water_n and_o chrism_n so_o long_o before_o your_o deal_n with_o the_o party_n at_o the_o church_n door_n your_o put_n of_o salt_n into_o his_o mouth_n your_o dress_n his_o nostril_n and_o ear_n withspettle_v and_o your_o give_v he_o a_o wax_n candle_n burn_v into_o his_o hand_n so_o thereby_o and_o by_o view_n of_o some_o other_o place_n in_o they_o i_o plain_o see_v that_o you_o have_v now_o give_v over_o the_o use_n of_o some_o which_o then_o be_v use_v upon_o the_o like_a ground_n that_o the_o rest_n be_v which_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v from_o they_o for_o first_o tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la which_o be_v the_o second_o place_n you_o quote_v as_o there_o he_o mention_n thrice_o dip_v renounce_v of_o the_o devil_n his_o pomp_n and_o angel_n which_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o allow_v and_o use_v with_o he_o so_o he_o say_v that_o be_v take_v from_o out_o of_o the_o water_n we_o taste_v before_o hand_n the_o temper_n of_o milk_n and_o honey_n and_o from_o the_o time_n of_o our_o baptism_n for_o a_o week_n we_o abstain_v from_o daily_a wash_n and_o all_o these_o do_v he_o ground_v a_o like_a say_v harum_fw-la &_o aliarum_fw-la disciplinarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v of_o these_o discipline_n if_o thou_o require_v the_o law_n of_o the_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v find_v none_o tradition_n shall_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o author_n custom_n the_o confirmer_n and_o faith_n the_o observer_n &_o yet_o you_o have_v leave_v these_o two_o last_o long_o ago_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o can_v learn_v and_o augustine_n a_o other_o of_o your_o author_n in_o this_o case_n in_o three_o of_o the_o place_n name_v by_o you_o mention_n exufflation_n which_o you_o have_v give_v over_o as_o he_o do_v some_o other_o that_o you_o retain_v and_o the_o same_o author_n upon_o the_o 65._o psalm_n show_v that_o in_o their_o exorcism_n they_o use_v fire_n because_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n pass_v through_o fire_n and_o water_n thou_o shall_v come_v to_o a_o refresh_n and_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n ad_fw-la cathecumenos_fw-gr de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 1._o he_o say_v that_o before_o baptism_n be_v use_v beside_o the_o catechism_n exorcism_n prayer_n and_o canticle_n in_o sufflation_n sackcloth_n bow_v of_o the_o neck_n &_o humility_n of_o the_o foot_n and_o hierom_n upon_o the_o 55._o of_o esay_n and_o against_o the_o luciferian_o show_n further_o that_o then_o be_v use_v the_o taste_n of_o wine_n and_o honey_n wherefore_o if_o the_o doctor_n and_o father_n mention_v of_o some_o of_o your_o ceremony_n bind_v you_o to_o think_v the_o use_n thereof_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a still_o why_o shall_v not_o their_o authority_n be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n for_o these_o which_o you_o see_v they_o ground_n aswell_o as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o and_o if_o their_o mention_v and_o thus_o ground_v of_o these_o notwithstanding_o you_o will_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o leave_v these_o why_o may_v not_o we_o aswell_o be_v at_o our_o liberty_n to_o leave_v off_o some_o of_o the_o other_o that_o we_o find_v most_o needle_n and_o most_o to_o have_v be_v abuse_v by_o you_o to_o obscure_v and_o darken_v the_o simple_a institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n will_v you_o follow_v the_o father_n as_o far_o as_o you_o listen_v and_o leave_v they_o when_o you_o listen_v and_o may_v no_o body_n but_o you_o do_v so_o moreover_o in_o look_v upon_o this_o occasion_n into_o the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n i_o must_v needs_o advertise_v thou_o christian_n reader_n that_o i_o find_v great_a variety_n in_o the_o enumeration_n of_o ceremony_n about_o this_o sacrament_n in_o they_o and_o likewise_o great_a odds_n betwixt_o the_o opinion_n and_o conceit_n that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n show_n they_o have_v of_o they_o from_o that_o that_o other_o of_o as_o good_a credit_n as_o they_o have_v whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o use_v alike_o all_o in_o every_o place_n but_o in_o some_o place_n and_o time_n more_o and_o in_o some_o less_o but_o also_o that_o some_o use_v they_o to_o one_o end_n and_o some_o to_o another_o so_o that_o no_o certain_a rule_n either_o for_o the_o ceremony_n themselves_o or_o for_o the_o manner_n or_o end_n of_o the_o use_n of_o they_o can_v be_v deduce_v from_o thence_o whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o for_o any_o thing_n write_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n hereof_o so_o that_o the_o essential_a part_n and_o thing_n belong_v hereunto_o which_o have_v express_v warrant_n from_o the_o institution_n thereof_o be_v observe_v first_o and_o then_o next_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n and_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o time_n next_o after_o they_o necessary_a instruction_n and_o explanation_n to_o and_o of_o the_o right_a use_n thereof_o with_o convenient_a prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n meet_v to_o be_v use_v in_o such_o a_o action_n be_v use_v and_o that_o also_o in_o due_a time_n and_o place_n by_z to_z &_o before_o fit_a person_n any_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o any_o kingdom_n by_o the_o provincial_a authority_n that_o it_o have_v may_v free_o reject_v so_o many_o of_o the_o other_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n as_o it_o shall_v think_v good_a and_o likewise_o retain_v so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o she_o find_v may_v fit_o be_v retain_v for_o order_n and_o comeliness_n without_o place_v any_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n holiness_n or_o of_o merit_n in_o they_o and_o therefore_o forasmuch_o as_o our_o church_n careful_o have_v take_v this_o course_n in_o these_o three_o point_n and_o follow_v the_o same_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o these_o father_n that_o you_o have_v name_v consent_n upon_o about_o the_o administer_a of_o this_o sacrament_n but_o we_o full_o do_v observe_v the_o same_o and_o here_o in_o england_n especial_o what_o fault_n can_v you_o find_v of_o the_o 5._o thing_n your_o father_n mention_n we_o retain_v &_o use_v though_o not_o with_o any_o superstitious_a intention_n as_o you_o do_v 2_o of_o they_o the_o rest_n we_o have_v cut_v of_o according_a both_o to_o s._n august_n advice_n &_o your_o pope_n stephanus_n judgement_n before_o note_a because_o the_o multitude_n before_o be_v too_o great_a for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o they_o be_v grow_v into_o gross_a abuse_n among_o you_o no_o essential_a or_o necessary_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v be_v omit_v with_o we_o and_o we_o have_v beside_o full_o enough_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o we_o live_v in_o which_o time_n it_o be_v more_o likely_a in_o such_o ceremony_n rite_n and_o fashion_n for_o we_o to_o err_v rather_o in_o retain_v too_o many_o then_o in_o abolish_n too_o many_o but_o because_o neither_o you_o shall_v say_v nor_o your_o reader_n think_v y_o these_o father_n who_o name_n you_o bring_v we_o to_o countenance_v all_o your_o ceremony_n which_o you_o use_v about_o baptism_n
well_o to_o prove_v that_o then_o of_o such_o notorious_a fault_n there_o be_v use_v and_o look_v for_o public_a and_o sorrowful_a confession_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o enumeration_n of_o all_o sin_n remember_v in_o secret_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o priest_n sure_o i_o be_o in_o that_o sermon_n before_o he_o come_v to_o these_o word_n contrary_a to_o your_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n in_o this_o very_a point_n he_o teach_v that_o veniam_fw-la peccatis_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o ipsum_fw-la commissa_fw-la sunt_fw-la solus_fw-la potest_fw-la ille_fw-la largiri_fw-la qui_fw-la peccata_fw-la nostra_fw-la portavit_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v he_o only_o can_v give_v we_o pardon_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o bear_v our_o sin_n &c._n &c._n add_v straight_o man_n can_v be_v great_a than_o god_n neither_o can_v he_o be_v a_o servant_n by_o his_o indulgence_n remit_v or_o forgive_v that_o which_o be_v grievous_o commit_v against_o god_n lest_o so_o to_o he_o that_o be_v fall_v this_o fault_n come_v unto_o his_o other_o that_o he_o forget_v that_o it_o be_v say_v long_o ago_o hier._n 17._o curse_a be_v that_o man_n that_o have_v his_o trust_n in_o man_n and_o therefore_o both_o immediate_o and_o through_o that_o sermon_n he_o be_v earnest_a to_o move_v they_o that_o be_v fall_v to_o fly_v to_o god_n in_o prayer_n in_o weep_v and_o mourning_n now_o indeed_o both_o for_o their_o better_a direction_n to_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n effectual_o and_o for_o the_o further_a declaration_n and_o testification_n of_o their_o repentance_n to_o be_v unfeigned_a he_o will_v have_v confession_n of_o such_o their_o fall_n to_o be_v make_v with_o all_o sorrowfulnes_n before_o the_o lord_n priest_n let_v this_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o his_o only_a be_v receive_v and_o your_o auricular_a confession_n will_v come_v short_a home_o for_o if_o none_o but_o such_o that_o have_v so_o fall_v as_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o shall_v confess_v such_o their_o fall_n and_o that_o only_a to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o teach_v without_o all_o opinion_n when_o they_o have_v do_v that_o any_o can_v absolve_v they_o but_o god_n your_o confessor_n and_o ghostly_a father_n as_o you_o term_v they_o may_v be_v set_v a_o beg_n for_o any_o live_n they_o can_v get_v by_o hear_v of_o confession_n the_o next_o you_o allege_v be_v origen_n upon_o the_o 37._o psalm_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o hom._n upon_o leviticus_fw-la wherein_o indeed_o he_o counsel_v those_o that_o have_v fall_v into_o any_o grievous_a sin_n though_o secret_a yet_o to_o seek_v out_o some_o discreet_a and_o skilful_a physician_n to_o open_v their_o disease_n and_o distress_n of_o mind_n unto_o that_o according_a to_o his_o counsel_n and_o advise_v they_o may_v do_v either_o in_o public_o confess_v of_o they_o or_o otherwise_o in_o repent_v of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o that_o can_v be_v make_v of_o any_o thing_n fate_v by_o origen_n in_o these_o two_o place_n but_o this_o his_o counsel_n may_v be_v follow_v thorough_o and_o yet_o you_o come_v very_o short_a of_o prove_v the_o necessity_n by_o god_n law_n of_o your_o auricular_a confession_n or_o special_a and_o precise_a enumeration_n of_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o circumstance_n thereof_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o priest_n the_o physic_n that_o they_o fight_v at_o the_o priest_n hand_n in_o these_o case_n be_v direction_n how_o to_o repent_v and_o to_o recover_v comfort_n under_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o such_o comfortable_a doctrine_n and_o counsel_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v they_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o you_o seek_v for_o at_o their_o hand_n be_v absolution_n to_o be_v pronounce_v by_o they_o unto_o you_o for_o your_o so_o confess_v so_o that_o neither_o for_o matter_n to_o be_v confess_v nor_o for_o the_o end_n thereof_o have_v you_o any_o warrant_n and_o countenance_n from_o they_o after_o origen_n augustine_n 2._o book_n the_o visitatione_n infirmorum_fw-la be_v produce_v in_o which_o book_n the_o author_n threaten_v damnation_n to_o such_o as_o have_v sin_v shun_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n &_o yet_o take_v not_o occasion_n by_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n judgement_n which_o they_o can_v not_o shun_v to_o repent_v and_o amend_v but_o if_o they_o judge_v and_o amend_v themselves_o he_o do_v not_o so_o allen_n will_v not_o stand_v to_o it_o that_o those_o book_n be_v augustine_n write_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o erasmus_n censure_v thereof_o be_v that_o it_o be_v sermo_fw-la locutulei_fw-la nec_fw-la docti_fw-la nec_fw-la diserti_fw-la that_o be_v it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o some_o prattler_n neither_o learned_a nor_o eloquent_a yea_o he_o add_v what_o forehead_n or_o mind_n have_v they_o that_o thrust_v upon_o we_o such_o writing_n under_o the_o name_n of_o augustine_n and_o the_o divine_n of_o louvain_n say_v flat_o it_o be_v none_o of_o he_o &_o therefore_o with_o far_o more_o credit_n to_o your_o cause_n may_v you_o have_v let_v this_o testimony_n alone_o and_o never_o have_v mention_v it_o but_o whosoever_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o no_o more_o can_v be_v ground_v thereupon_o but_o that_o be_v think_v it_o good_a to_o further_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o party_n that_o he_o shall_v confess_v his_o sin_n that_o he_o have_v fall_v into_o and_o offend_v god_n church_n withal_o to_o the_o minister_n that_o by_o he_o he_o may_v be_v deal_v withal_o by_o correption_n admonition_n or_o consolation_n as_o he_o see_v good_a and_o the_o edge_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v not_o simple_o against_o such_o as_o do_v refuse_v to_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o god_n minister_n but_o only_o against_o such_o as_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v do_v not_o repent_v for_o he_o say_v si_fw-la ea_fw-la confiteri_fw-la aut_fw-la emendare_fw-la noluerint_fw-la and_o again_o si_fw-la in_o malo_fw-la permanserint_fw-la that_o be_v if_o they_o will_v not_o confess_v they_o nor_o amend_v and_o if_o they_o continue_v in_o evil_a beside_o if_o the_o word_n in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o you_o be_v well_o mark_v it_o will_v thereby_o sufficient_o appear_v in_o that_o there_o be_v then_o so_o many_o reason_n that_o stay_v man_n as_o there_o by_o that_o author_n word_n it_o seem_v there_o be_v from_o confess_v to_o the_o priest_n that_o it_o be_v not_o then_o think_v that_o so_o to_o confess_v sin_n be_v so_o necessary_a as_o you_o will_v now_o pretend_v you_o to_o be_v if_o it_o have_v be_v either_o thought_n to_o be_v simple_o necessary_a by_o god_n law_n or_o it_o then_o have_v be_v think_v and_o know_v to_o be_v a_o set_a law_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confess_v sin_n in_o secret_a to_o the_o minister_n why_o have_v not_o you_o nor_o yet_o any_o of_o your_o side_n bring_v we_o any_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o ever_o use_v either_o of_o these_o reason_n to_o persuade_v man_n unto_o it_o cyril_n in_o his_o 12._o book_n upon_o joh._n cap._n 56._o be_v the_o four_o man_n you_o cite_v for_o this_o purpose_n which_o place_n if_o you_o have_v ever_o read_v you_o shall_v have_v find_v he_o to_o set_v down_o this_o first_o as_o a_o most_o sure_a principle_n that_o only_a god_n be_v he_o that_o must_v loose_v a_o man_n from_o his_o sin_n for_o to_o who_o else_o say_v he_o shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o deliver_v transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n but_o unto_o the_o author_n of_o the_o law_n himself_o which_o position_n if_o it_o be_v receive_v there_o will_v be_v small_a have_v make_v to_o your_o ear_n shrift_n but_o then_o indeed_o it_o follow_v in_o he_o how_o then_o do_v christ_n give_v this_o divine_a power_n to_o his_o apostle_n whereunto_o his_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o give_v it_o they_o because_o he_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o they_o forgive_v sin_n which_o he_o show_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v by_o use_v their_o ministry_n to_o baptise_v man_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n by_o rebuke_v of_o sinner_n and_o by_o show_v they_o favour_n again_o as_o paul_n deal_v with_o the_o man_n of_o corinth_n so_o that_o you_o see_v his_o doctrine_n be_v there_o that_o man_n come_v to_o have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v our_o ministry_n effectual_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o repentance_n where_o to_o make_v auricular_a confession_n to_o man_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o reckon_v up_o as_o any_o mean_n whereby_o in_o the_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n the_o holy_a ghost_n forgive_v any_o their_o sin_n but_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o use_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n in_o due_a season_n be_v note_v to_o be_v the_o mean_n he_o send_v we_o there_o you_o see_v to_o the_o example_n of_o paul_n deal_n with_o the_o man_n of_o corinth_n of_o
&_o true_a word_n of_o god_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o have_v be_v you_o be_v i_o will_v man_n will_v &_o can_v read_v they_o as_o you_o wish_v for_o they_o i_o be_o sure_a they_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o be_v far_o more_o with_o we_o they_o with_o you_o never_o a_o christian_a doctor_n in_o the_o church_n for_o they_o have_v all_o teach_v the_o contrary_a to_o your_o forge_a gospel_n as_o every_o man_n may_v see_v that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n but_o to_o look_v in_o their_o work_n or_o to_o read_v those_o place_n that_o be_v quote_v by_o i_o and_o diverse_a other_o that_o have_v confute_v your_o heresy_n many_o a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o by_o their_o authority_n let_v they_o then_o that_o have_v any_o eye_n behold_v the_o hazard_n that_o you_o run_v into_o and_o so_o many_o other_o throughout_o the_o world_n which_o follow_v your_o opinion_n we_o opinion_n even_o thus_o do_v you_o with_o we_o if_o one_o shall_v come_v to_o accuse_v a_o other_o of_o falsehood_n and_o that_o before_o he_o be_v assure_v of_o this_o matter_n wherewith_o he_o do_v seek_v to_o atteinte_v the_o defendant_n will_v not_o one_o think_v his_o matter_n very_o great_a or_o his_o knowledge_n very_o small_a to_o run_v headlong_o into_o the_o danger_n of_o that_o crime_n which_o if_o he_o can_v not_o prove_v he_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o himself_o what_o then_o shall_v become_v of_o you_o o_o most_o simple_a sheep_n which_o seek_v with_o feign_a argument_n to_o condemn_v not_o one_o or_o two_o enough_o two_o these_o be_v but_o word_n fear_v they_o not_o but_o see_v the_o man_n have_v nothing_o else_o he_o think_v good_a belike_o to_o have_v enough_o of_o they_o and_o those_o swell_v enough_o but_o all_o the_o christian_n and_o catholic_n that_o have_v be_v in_o this_o world_n since_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o have_v refuse_v and_o reprove_v your_o doctrine_n as_o heretical_a &_o have_v teach_v we_o this_o that_o we_o hold_v at_o this_o day_n but_o now_o to_o answer_v unto_o that_o that_o be_v mention_v a_o little_a before_o &_o that_o which_o a_o number_n of_o your_o flock_n have_v tell_v i_o when_o i_o have_v confer_v with_o they_o which_o be_v that_o tale_n that_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v that_o ignorance_n will_v excuse_v any_o that_o die_v out_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v likely_a you_o tell_v but_o a_o tale_n the_o error_n of_o our_o predecessor_n be_v not_o impute_v unto_o they_o forasmuch_o as_o these_o good_a simple_a people_n go_v to_o work_v after_o the_o gross_a sort_n think_v to_o do_v well_o and_o that_o as_o than_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v well_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v now_o bring_v to_o light_v through_o your_o gospel_n i_o say_v that_o in_o this_o you_o be_v deceive_v more_o than_o half_a the_o value_n of_o your_o religion_n ke_v religion_n you_o will_v seem_v then_o belike_o that_o your_o sim●le_n and_o ignorant_a papist_n have_v all_o be_v great_a and_o profound_a cla●_n ke_v for_o before_o some_o of_o they_o die_v they_o have_v forget_v more_o they_o ever_o you_o have_v learn_v for_o all_o that_o that_o you_o know_v you_o have_v learn_v it_o of_o their_o book_n or_o steal_v it_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n interpret_n both_o their_o work_n &_o the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o meaning_n and_o although_o it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o have_v all_o err_v your_o colour_a excuse_n of_o simplicity_n can_v avail_v they_o nothing_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n will_v accuse_v they_o if_o devotion_n if_o i_o be_o glad_a to_o hear_v you_o cite_v this_o testimony_n to_o prove_v that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o excuse_v any_o but_o why_o plead_v you_o then_o sometime_o that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n the_o gospel_n say_v 4._o say_v 2._o corinth_n 4._o s._n paul_n have_v be_v hide_v it_o have_v be_v hide_v to_o those_o that_o have_v perish_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o which_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v they_o if_o that_o those_o unto_o who_o the_o truth_n have_v be_v hide_v have_v perish_v wherefore_o do_v your_o excuse_n serve_v they_o this_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v most_o like_a i_o mean_v that_o they_o have_v not_o err_v nor_o that_o you_o only_o shall_v be_v save_v &_o they_o all_o condemn_v to_o my_o judgement_n our_o ancestor_n with_o all_o their_o simplicity_n do_v never_o err_v so_o much_o as_o your_o disciple_n do_v to_o follow_v such_o master_n loathsome_a master_n this_o brag_n have_v be_v use_v so_o often_o without_o proof_n that_o now_o it_o be_v steal_v and_o loathsome_a as_o condemn_v that_o faith_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v teach_v &_o maintain_v these_o 1500._o year_n to_o maintain_v those_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v bury_v in_o hell_n many_o a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o &_o now_o be_v call_v up_o again_o by_o martin_n luther_n caluin_n &_o his_o fellow_n the_o xxxviii_o chapter_n the_o vanity_n of_o the_o brag_n wherewith_o you_o begin_v again_o this_o chapter_n by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o answer_v of_o the_o former_a have_v appear_v i_o hope_v sufficient_o already_o but_o whensoever_o it_o shall_v please_v you_o or_o any_o for_o you_o to_o think_v that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v tedious_a for_o the_o reader_n to_o bring_v we_o forth_o this_o number_n of_o doctor_n confessor_n &_o martyr_n that_o you_o here_o boast_v of_o and_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v indeed_o by_o their_o own_o word_n or_o other_o good_a evidence_n that_o they_o be_v live_v &_o die_v so_o on_o your_o side_n as_o you_o here_o pretend_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o one_o of_o we_o or_o other_o will_v easy_o make_v it_o evident_a unto_o the_o world_n that_o you_o be_v far_o great_a in_o word_n and_o show_v than_o you_o be_v in_o deed_n and_o truth_n you_o will_v have_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o only_o to_o avoid_v tediousness_n to_o he_o you_o have_v forbear_v by_o their_o testimony_n live_v and_o die_v here_o to_o confirm_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o doctrine_n and_o all_o that_o you_o do_v use_v at_o this_o day_n but_o alas_o your_o own_o conscience_n tell_v you_o that_o indeed_o not_o only_o the_o tediousness_n of_o it_o to_o yourself_o but_o the_o impossibility_n of_o it_o altogether_o draw_v you_o to_o be_v glad_a to_o use_v this_o pretty_a shift_n &_o piece_n of_o cunning_a to_o salve_v your_o credit_n &_o your_o cause_n with_o he_o consider_v therefore_o what_o already_o have_v be_v answer_v to_o the_o father_n quote_v by_o you_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n in_o who_o evidence_n for_o those_o matter_n belike_o you_o dare_v be_v bold_a &_o what_o otherwise_o upon_o sundry_a other_o occasion_n in_o answer_v of_o your_o book_n i_o have_v set_v down_o out_o of_o they_o direct_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o this_o that_o you_o say_v you_o can_v prove_v out_o of_o they_o your_o question_n with_o upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o your_o brag_n here_o to_o be_v but_o a_o truth_n you_o have_v infer_v &_o put_v forth_o whither_o these_o doctor_n confessor_n &_o martyr_n that_o you_o talk_v of_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o hell_n be_v childish_a frivolous_a &_o needle_n for_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o there_o be_v never_o a_o doctor_n confessor_n or_o martyr_n of_o any_o credit_n and_o worthy_a so_o to_o be_v account_v for_o the_o catholic_a religion_n they_o teach_v and_o dye_v in_o but_o though_o in_o some_o of_o they_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v there_o may_v be_v find_v some_o inclination_n towards_o some_o thing_n now_o hold_v by_o you_o that_o yet_o we_o hold_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o not_o only_o they_o hold_v with_o we_o the_o foundation_n and_o other_o principal_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n wherein_o you_o be_v contrary_a both_o unto_o they_o &_o we_o but_o that_o also_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o mercy_n towards_o they_o keep_v they_o in_o the_o rest_n from_o the_o grossness_n &_o impiety_n that_o you_o be_v therein_o fall_v into_o since_o that_o they_o be_v and_o be_v we_o and_o not_o you_o and_o therefore_o we_o comfortable_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o other_o principal_a point_n as_o they_o do_v though_o they_o as_o man_n build_v thereupon_o some_o wood_n hay_n &_o stubble_n yet_o the_o lord_n sound_v the_o mean_n by_o the_o fire_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o affliction_n so_o to_o descry_v the_o same_o unto_o they_o &_o to_o consume_v all_o that_o unsuitable_a build_n in_o they_o ere_o they_o go_v hence_o that_o we_o need_v not_o through_o any_o such_o scrupulositie_n of_o conscience_n as_o you_o imagine_v fear_v to_o give_v our_o judgement_n or_o opinion_n of_o they_o for_o we_o fear_v not_o their_o be_v in_o hell_n for_o
we_o only_o be_v save_v or_o they_o all_o condemn_v for_o i_o have_v show_v how_o a_o number_n yea_o infinite_a number_n of_o they_o may_v be_v save_v this_o notwithstanding_o as_o for_o your_o judgement_n that_o they_o never_o err_v so_o much_o as_o our_o disciple_n it_o be_v not_o material_a for_o you_o be_v no_o competent_a judge_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o your_o judgement_n that_o we_o condemn_v the_o faith_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v hold_v this_o 1500._o year_n and_o maintain_v the_o old_a rot_a condemn_a heresy_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o by_o beg_v after_o this_o sort_n at_o our_o hand_n though_o therein_o you_o be_v never_o so_o impudent_a and_o shameless_a a_o beggar_n as_o that_o way_n in_o this_o your_o book_n your_o great_a skill_n have_v appear_v you_o shall_v never_o get_v and_o therefore_o set_v your_o heart_n at_o rest_n your_o word_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o loud_a &_o stout_a shall_v never_o make_v we_o yield_v you_o this_o for_o a_o alm_n you_o must_v therefore_o prove_v your_o word_n true_a and_o so_o make_v unto_o we_o evident_a demonstration_n thereof_o which_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v before_o we_o may_v yield_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o have_v any_o right_n at_o all_o to_o this_o the_o thirty-nine_o chapter_n if_o that_o by_o a_o good_a and_o a_o right_a title_n your_o disciple_n call_v themselves_o the_o child_n of_o god_n this_o make_v i_o believe_v that_o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v fulfil_v in_o they_o the_o which_o be_v 16._o be_v luc._n 16._o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n be_v wise_a in_o their_o generation_n then_o the_o child_n of_o light_n to_o prove_v this_o true_a we_o see_v this_o daily_a experience_n for_o a_o wise_a worldly_a man_n when_o he_o do_v put_v out_o his_o money_n to_o gain_v he_o will_v not_o trust_v the_o promise_n so_o soon_o of_o one_o or_o two_o or_o three_o as_o he_o will_v do_v the_o bond_n of_o a_o whole_a town_n or_o city_n that_o shall_v warrant_v or_o assure_v his_o gain_n but_o you_o nor_o your_o disciple_n have_v not_o do_v thus_o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o you_o to_o have_v first_o put_v your_o faith_n and_o trust_n in_o god_n believe_v that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o declare_v the_o meaning_n as_o touch_v the_o scripture_n unto_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o church_n we_o build_v not_o our_o faith_n religion_n or_o hope_v of_o salvation_n of_o these_o man_n credit_n but_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v for_o credit_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o credit_n of_o all_o man_n speak_v beside_o or_o contrary_a unto_o they_o and_o not_o to_o hazard_v the_o hope_n of_o your_o salvation_n put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n and_o three_o or_o four_o other_o such_o pelt_a merchant_n which_o have_v new_o set_v up_o shop_n at_o wittemberge_n geneva_n &_o losane_n which_o one_o of_o these_o day_n we_o shall_v see_v bankeroute_n as_o their_o predecessor_n have_v be_v before_o they_o the_o which_o after_o that_o they_o have_v deceive_v the_o poor_a simple_a catholic_n power_n catholic_n beware_v of_o dog_n phil._n 3._o ergo_fw-la take_v heed_n of_o this_o romish_a barker_n the_o best_a be_v he_o be_v but_o one_o that_o bark_v to_o bite_v &_o hurt_v he_o have_v small_a or_o no_o power_n and_o gain_v some_o of_o their_o soul_n for_o the_o devil_n they_o have_v at_o the_o last_o sell_v all_o their_o honesty_n and_o credit_n so_o that_o at_o this_o day_n except_o that_o it_o be_v those_o that_o read_v the_o ancient_a history_n no_o body_n else_o do_v remember_v that_o ever_o they_o live_v in_o the_o world_n you_o be_v come_v now_o last_o of_o all_o to_o make_v up_o their_o merchandise_n but_o your_o credit_n can_v hardly_o be_v good_a before_o god_n not_o god_n will_v you_o never_o have_v do_v with_o this_o bare_a &_o vain_a brag_n show_v this_o but_o once_o to_o be_v true_a and_o then_o we_o yield_v and_o then_o brag_v and_o spare_v not_o for_o you_o shall_v have_v against_o you_o all_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n which_o have_v continue_v visible_a since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n unto_o this_o day_n all_o the_o doctor_n of_o all_o the_o university_n all_o the_o empire_n kingdom_n and_o private_a state_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n which_o have_v receive_v and_o honour_v this_o doctrine_n that_o you_o call_v papistical_a and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o you_o will_v not_o trust_v man_n but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o agree_v to_o the_o like_a that_o we_o ought_v all_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n but_o we_o vary_v about_o the_o interpretation_n for_o you_o interpret_v it_o after_o one_o sort_n and_o we_o after_o another_o you_o expound_v it_o after_o a_o new_a sort_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v follow_v tradition_n follow_v when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o our_o interpretation_n rather_o than_o you_o have_v continuance_n from_o all_o the_o sound_a ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o undoubted_a apostolical_a tradition_n the_o old_a exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n &_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v forsake_v or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n your_o minister_n have_v lead_v the_o sheep_n astray_o from_o the_o old_a flock_n at_o the_o depart_n from_o the_o which_o they_o have_v be_v all_o scatter_a abroad_o some_o follow_a luther_n some_o caluin_n some_o the_o anabaptist_n &_o so_o forth_o for_o the_o which_o the_o pope_n &_o king_n &_o other_o that_o have_v have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v answer_v at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o as_o much_o as_o while_o pope_n while_o ergo_fw-la you_o have_v have_v sleepy_a pope_n they_o sleep_v you_o have_v come_v &_o sowedweed_n among_o the_o good_a corn_n then_o see_v you_o be_v the_o sheep_n that_o room_n astray_o what_o excuse_n can_v they_o make_v before_o god_n that_o wilful_o follow_v your_o step_n we_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v the_o poor_a sheep_n of_o god_n that_o have_v continue_v with_o our_o old_a flock_n steadfast_a &_o whole_a as_o touch_v our_o religion_n but_o very_o weak_a and_o sickly_a shame_n sickly_a amend_v they_o for_o shame_n as_o touch_v our_o manner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v sick_a say_v but_o your_o wound_n sore_n &_o sickness_n be_v grow_v so_o desperate_a that_o you_o will_v account_v none_o such_o but_o they_o that_o will_v tell_v you_o you_o be_v sound_a and_o in_o health_n where_o you_o be_v most_o sick_a full_a of_o sin_n &_o vice_n attend_v some_o sage_a physician_n to_o heal_v we_o &_o good_a pastor_n to_o keep_v we_o cast_v out_o the_o chaff_n from_o the_o corn_n i_o mean_v cut_v off_o those_o abuse_n that_o be_v offensive_a not_o to_o such_o scrupulous_a conscience_n as_o you_o have_v but_o unto_o he_o that_o do_v threaten_v they_o for_o the_o careless_a life_n of_o their_o sheep_n &_o so_o to_o continue_v in_o that_o do_v that_o prove_v this_o once_o some_o of_o you_o or_o else_o for_o shame_n never_o say_v it_o almost_o in_o every_o leaf_n for_o lack_v of_o matter_n as_o you_o do_v ancient_a faith_n that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o thirty-nine_o chapter_n in_o this_o chapter_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o your_o old_a great_a word_n &_o stout_a beg_v the_o main_a question_n that_o your_o church_n be_v the_o true_a &_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n that_o all_o the_o christian_n great_a &_o small_a since_o christ_n have_v be_v flat_a on_o your_o side_n that_o you_o be_v the_o only_a man_n that_o follow_v the_o sound_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n deliver_v unto_o you_o by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n &_o that_o we_o be_v but_o two_o or_o three_o in_o comparison_n of_o you_o spring_v up_o yesterday_o &_o such_o as_o you_o prophesy_v will_v short_o grow_v banckerout_a both_o of_o credit_n and_o honesty_n this_o bladder_n full_a of_o nothing_o but_o wind_n be_v sufficient_o i_o hope_v prick_v and_o let_v out_o already_o by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o sundry_a place_n before_o howsoever_o i_o hope_v the_o reader_n be_v not_o so_o simple_a as_o that_o see_v in_o you_o never_o so_o great_a store_n of_o these_o swell_a word_n as_o long_o as_o he_o know_v your_o adversary_n deny_v they_o as_o stout_o of_o the_o other_o side_n and_o he_o see_v you_o bring_v nothing_o but_o bare_a word_n without_o proof_n he_o will_v any_o whit_n be_v move_v therewith_o and_o yet_o as_o not_o able_a a_o discourse_n as_o this_o book_n of_o you_o be_v account_v the_o great_a stuffing_n that_o it_o have_v be_v only_o
tradition_n because_o they_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o plain_a scripture_n themselves_o we_o reject_v otherwise_o we_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o prove_v our_o sense_n thereof_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o ancient_a church_n &_o her_o doctor_n better_a than_o you_o can_v and_o as_o for_o the_o variety_n among_o we_o of_o interpretation_n which_o you_o charge_v we_o withal_o sure_o we_o be_v it_o will_v never_o prove_v so_o great_a as_o have_v be_v and_o be_v among_o you_o or_o as_o be_v betwixt_o your_o interpretation_n and_o that_o which_o be_v of_o they_o 900._o year_n ago_o and_o therefore_o for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v yet_o say_v you_o yourselves_o be_v the_o rove_a sheep_n from_o the_o ancient_a sheepfold_n you_o be_v they_o which_o while_n man_n sleep_v have_v sow_v care_n among_o the_o good_a corn_n and_o which_o be_v the_o sheep_n sick_a in_o religion_n as_o well_o as_o in_o manner_n and_o not_o we_o and_o therefore_o they_o that_o have_v join_v with_o you_o whosoever_o they_o have_v be_v be_v like_a at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o smart_v for_o nothing_o more_o then_o for_o take_v part_n with_o you_o and_o so_o to_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n whatsoever_o hitherto_o you_o have_v gain_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o simple_a by_o these_o your_o vain_a and_o swell_a word_n you_o shall_v hereafter_o loose_v ten_o time_n as_o much_o among_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a thereby_o the_o xl._n chapter_n i_o know_v well_o that_o you_o will_v take_v this_o confession_n of_o i_o to_o your_o advantage_n say_v that_o for_o fear_n of_o be_v infect_v with_o our_o superstitious_a disease_n you_o have_v separate_v yourselves_o from_o the_o common_a flock_n but_o if_o you_o do_v consider_v my_o first_o word_n they_o have_v bar_v you_o all_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o reply_v just_o for_o i_o have_v already_o say_v that_o although_o we_o be_v sickly_a &_o weak_a sheep_n as_o touch_v our_o do_n or_o manner_n yet_o in_o regard_n of_o our_o faith_n thanks_n be_v to_o god_n we_o be_v safe_a &_o sound_a keep_v still_o 〈◊〉_d still_o indeed_o you_o have_v say_v and_o say_v it_o again_o &_o again_o but_o yet_o you_o have_v never_o prove_v ●t_z nor_o 〈◊〉_d that_o integrity_n of_o religion_n that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n without_o add_v or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o catholic_a belief_n for_o as_o for_o ceremony_n the_o church_n have_v use_v the_o ever_o as_o touch_v the_o time_n &_o the_o place_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n &_o edification_n of_o our_o neighbour_n 4._o neighbour_n your_o antichristian_a religion_n be_v that_o that_o have_v cause_v we_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o you_o as_o we_o be_v bid_v reve._n 18_o vers_fw-la 4._o &_o therefore_o if_o you_o do_v separate_v yourselves_o from_o our_o kind_n of_o live_v to_o lead_v a_o holy_a solitary_a life_n as_o the_o holy_a heremites_n &_o saint_n have_v do_v in_o time_n past_a forsake_v the_o conversation_n of_o the_o common_a people_n to_o live_v in_o contemplation_n without_o separate_a themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o which_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v &_o have_v receive_v their_o faith_n your_o do_n have_v be_v as_o much_o worthy_a of_o praise_n in_o that_o respect_n as_o now_o they_o be_v damnable_a consider_v how_o you_o forsake_v the_o common_a tabernacle_n within_o the_o which_o both_o you_o &_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n &_o our_o spiritual_a food_n altogether_o and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o body_n run_v astray_o from_o the_o right_a path_n that_o he_o shall_v follow_v the_o good_a christian_n ought_v to_o fix_v in_o his_o mind_n this_o resolution_n i_o mean_v to_o serve_v god_n &_o to_o live_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n common_o or_o private_o for_o when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n put_v as_o touch_v the_o life_n the_o commonn_n be_v meaning_n be_v this_o be_v a_o right_n popish_a gloss_n that_o be_v a_o plain_a pervert_v of_o christ_n meaning_n as_o 7._o as_o mat._n 7._o christ_n do_v say_v do_v lead_v one_o to_o perdition_n &_o the_o narrow_a way_n do_v guide_v unto_o the_o part_n of_o salvation_n but_o if_o one_o speak_v of_o religion_n the_o contrary_a be_v verify_v for_o the_o common_a way_n be_v the_o way_n of_o health_n &_o the_o private_a way_n be_v the_o path_n of_o damnation_n other_o damnation_n and_o this_o be_v a_o other_o the_o prophet_n david_n in_o the_o 24_o psalm_n have_v a_o regard_n to_o this_o when_o he_o pray_v god_n to_o teach_v he_o his_o way_n by_o the_o religion_n &_o his_o path_n by_o the_o manner_n and_o custom_n the_o xl._n chapter_n you_o be_v deceive_v in_o think_v that_o we_o will_v pretend_v your_o evil_a manner_n or_o your_o difference_n in_o ceremony_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o you_o for_o we_o have_v always_o protest_v that_o it_o be_v especial_o your_o antichristian_a doctrine_n that_o have_v cause_v we_o to_o account_v that_o revelation_n 18.4_o go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n in_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n direct_o speak_v to_o we_o concern_v your_o romish_a synagogue_n and_o religion_n and_o therefore_o be_v it_o that_o we_o have_v so_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o you_o as_o we_o have_v because_o we_o find_v that_o you_o be_v apostate_n &_o long_o have_v be_v from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o true_o commend_v ancient_a roman_a church_n itself_o with_o who_o we_o can_v grow_v in_o common_a unless_o we_o have_v forsake_v your_o fellowship_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o separation_n of_o ourselves_o from_o you_o we_o know_v be_v more_o necessary_a and_o be_v more_o commendable_a than_o all_o the_o separation_n of_o heremites_n or_o any_o other_o of_o your_o cage_a bird_n howsoever_o you_o can_v have_v allow_v that_o better_a than_o this_o of_o we_o but_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v bind_v we_o to_o have_v continue_v with_o you_o because_o that_o we_o receive_v many_o of_o we_o baptism_n at_o your_o hand_n what_o i_o trust_v you_o be_v not_o so_o mean_v a_o divine_a as_o to_o think_v it_o always_o best_a for_o man_n to_o continue_v communion_n with_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o have_v baptize_v they_o you_o know_v i_o be_o sure_a that_o the_o arrian_n heretic_n their_o heresy_n spread_v itself_o so_o broad_a as_o it_o do_v and_o continue_v diverse_a 100_o year_n and_o other_o heretic_n as_o well_o as_o they_o baptize_v many_o and_o yet_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o think_v that_o they_o may_v not_o after_o forsake_v their_o heresy_n to_o turn_v to_o the_o truth_n you_o know_v many_o do_v forsake_v they_o and_o come_v to_o the_o truth_n &_o yet_o it_o be_v count_v a_o heresy_n to_o baptise_v they_o again_o the_o better_a yet_o to_o show_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v depart_v from_o you_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o have_v continue_v without_o add_v and_o diminish_v in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n first_o and_o since_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o all_o integrity_n have_v be_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o faithful_a pastor_n convey_v down_o unto_o you_o and_o so_o we_o have_v both_o baptism_n and_o all_o our_o other_o spiritual_a food_n with_o you_o these_o be_v but_o word_n the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_n as_o i_o have_v sufficient_o make_v demonstration_n before_o prove_v this_o indeed_o and_o we_o will_v repent_v we_o of_o our_o depart_n from_o you_o &_o most_o joyful_o &_o willing_o will_v we_o join_v with_o you_o again_o i_o like_v very_o well_o your_o counsel_n that_o every_o good_a christian_n shall_v full_o resolve_v and_o determine_v to_o serve_v god_n and_o to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o then_o i_o add_v that_o he_o have_v need_v well_o and_o through_o to_o be_v resolve_v what_o and_o which_o be_v that_o true_a catholic_a faith_n for_o his_o direction_n in_o this_o behalf_n how_o to_o discern_v which_o be_v the_o right_a way_n to_o heaven_n and_o which_o not_o and_o consequent_o which_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n &_o which_o be_v not_o you_o teach_v he_o that_o when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n put_v as_o touch_v life_n than_o the_o common_a way_n as_o christ_n do_v say_v mat._n 7._o do_v lead_v to_o perdition_n and_o the_o narrow_a to_o salvation_n but_o in_o religion_n it_o be_v contrary_a whereunto_o you_o say_v david_n allude_v psal_n 24._o saying_n show_v i_o thy_o way_n o_o lord_n and_o teach_v i_o thy_o path_n by_o way_n mean_v religion_n and_o by_o path_n manner_n where_o learn_v you_o this_o divinity_n if_o you_o look_v upon_o christ_n
as_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v for_o not_o receive_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n christ_n christ_n it_o be_v express_o prophesy_v that_o when_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v work_v such_o work_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v work_v they_o and_o herein_o he_o have_v privilege_n and_o prerogative_n beyond_o all_o man_n the_o like_a be_v not_o prophesy_v that_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v do_v always_o &_o therefore_o this_o be_v require_v at_o our_o hand_n without_o all_o reason_n and_o yet_o therefore_o we_o have_v not_o more_o privilege_n but_o less_o they_o christ_n if_o he_o have_v not_o do_v so_o many_o miracle_n for_o we_o know_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v be_v more_o privilege_v than_o christ_n and_o see_v that_o you_o have_v show_v nothing_o to_o verify_v it_o this_o way_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o your_o vocation_n nor_o you_o show_v no_o miracle_n &_o that_o your_o life_n be_v at_o the_o least_o as_o ill_o as_o we_o miracle_n we_o thus_o to_o threaten_v you_o we_o may_v bold_o &_o without_o shame_n because_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v our_o doctrine_n by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o christ_n teach_v and_o confirm_v with_o his_o miracle_n what_o move_v you_o to_o be_v so_o bold_a and_o so_o unshamefaced_a as_o to_o threaten_v we_o with_o eternal_a damnation_n if_o we_o receive_v not_o your_o heretical_a doctrine_n the_o which_o be_v so_o full_a of_o discord_n and_o division_n that_o one_o may_v easy_o gather_v by_o this_o from_o whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o do_v lead_v one_o although_o you_o have_v nothing_o in_o your_o mouth_n but_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o as_o us._n as_o whoso_o read_v that_o tract_n of_o augustine_n shall_v find_v the_o manichee_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v far_o like●_n you_o then_o us._n s._n augustine_n say_v unto_o your_o semblable_n sola_fw-la personat_fw-la apud_fw-la vos_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la us._n pollicitatio_fw-la i_o will_v you_o will_v go_v on_o with_o augustine_n and_o say_v if_o that_o be_v find_v with_o you_o it_o be_v more_o worth_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o you_o will_v be_v content_v to_o try_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n as_o he_o be_v and_o then_o you_o will_v sure_o so_o many_o of_o you_o as_o have_v any_o grace_n quick_o join_v with_o us._n i_o say_v no_o more_o at_o this_o time_n but_o that_o i_o beseech_v god_n to_o draw_v you_o as_o near_o to_o we_o as_o you_o be_v far_o from_o we_o and_o to_o inspire_v your_o mind_n to_o turn_v to_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o both_o to_o your_o own_o harm_n and_o we_o you_o have_v forsake_v the_o xlii_o chapter_n there_o be_v no_o question_n of_o that_o but_o that_o every_o one_o be_v to_o begin_v first_o to_o reform_v himself_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v both_o we_o and_o you_o grace_n effectual_o so_o to_o do_v but_o if_o neither_o side_n shall_v call_v upon_o the_o other_o for_o reformation_n until_o the_o one_o side_n be_v grow_v whole_o clear_a of_o sin_n you_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o then_o they_o must_v never_o do_v it_o for_o what_o company_n and_o society_n of_o man_n ever_o be_v there_o but_o therein_o be_v some_o bad_a as_o well_o as_o good_a as_o adam_n have_v a_o abel_n so_o have_v he_o a_o caine._n there_o be_v a_o ishmael_n as_o well_o as_o a_o isaac_n in_o abraham_n house_n and_o isaac_n have_v a_o esau_n as_o well_o as_o a_o jacob_n among_o the_o eight_o that_o be_v save_v in_o the_o ark_n there_o be_v a_o cham._n in_o the_o four_o that_o leave_v sodom_n one_o that_o look_v back_o and_o among_o christ_n 12._o apostle_n there_o be_v a_o judas_n yea_o christ_n have_v teach_v we_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o good_a seed_n and_o tare_n math._n 13._o that_o we_o be_v to_o expect_v no_o other_o in_o god_n own_o field_n but_o that_o even_o unto_o the_o harvest_n there_o will_v be_v a_o mixture_n always_o of_o bad_a with_o good_a but_o you_o charge_v we_o further_o that_o among_o we_o there_o be_v many_o kind_n of_o usury_n and_o interest_n and_o that_o though_o one_o way_n we_o care_v not_o for_o your_o image_n yet_o we_o love_v they_o so_o well_o a_o other_o way_n that_o we_o have_v rob_v your_o church_n of_o they_o whereunto_o my_o answer_n be_v that_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o there_o be_v too_o many_o among_o we_o who_o by_o such_o unlawful_a mean_n seek_v to_o enrich_v themselves_o and_o that_o there_o be_v too_o too_o many_o profane_a and_o carnal_a man_n that_o have_v our_o religion_n in_o their_o mouth_n who_o by_o their_o lewd_a conversation_n dishonour_v the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n &_o we_o be_v most_o hearty_o sorry_a for_o it_o and_o daily_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o amendment_n thereof_o but_o this_o we_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o we_o preach_v against_o all_o sin_n &_o impiety_n whatsoever_o and_o namely_o against_o usury_n and_o all_o tumultuous_a and_o disorderly_a spoil_v of_o church_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o you_o talk_v of_o and_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o law_n in_o our_o common_a weal_n condemn_v and_o disallow_v such_o deal_n &_o therefore_o we_o be_v wrong_v that_o in_o these_o thing_n we_o general_o or_o our_o religion_n at_o all_o shall_v be_v charge_v sure_o many_o of_o our_o usurer_n &_o extreme_a deal_n man_n among_o we_o be_v either_o man_n of_o no_o religion_n or_o you_o rather_o than_o we_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v where_o your_o religion_n be_v in_o great_a credit_n that_o in_o those_o common_a weal_n usury_n lie_v dead_a and_o bury_v sure_o i_o be_o your_o pope_n have_v be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n the_o cunning_a and_o unreasonabl_a usurer_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o that_o they_o have_v sell_v their_o palles_fw-la their_o lead_n and_o other_o their_o hallow_a ware_n which_o be_v indeed_o trifle_n and_o thing_n of_o no_o value_n for_o such_o sum_n of_o money_n and_o gold_n as_o they_o have_v you_o flat_o slander_v we_o in_o say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o we_o that_o affirm_v we_o be_v whole_o without_o spot_n or_o sin_n for_o we_o both_o detest_v that_o opinion_n and_o count_v they_o that_o shall_v hold_v so_o even_o worthy_a to_o be_v detest_v for_o their_o so_o hold_v yet_o you_o say_v if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o ought_v not_o to_o move_v you_o to_o leave_v your_o religion_n teach_v you_o by_o your_o forefather_n what_o a_o sound_a ground_n of_o religion_n forefather_n without_o distinction_n be_v i_o have_v show_v sufficient_o already_o in_o which_o point_n i_o will_v always_o have_v the_o christian_n to_o learn_v to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o old_a and_o ancient_a forefather_n the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o doctrine_n and_o life_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o late_a forefather_n and_o never_o to_o think_v the_o latter_a worthy_a follow_v any_o further_a than_o they_o have_v follow_v the_o former_a and_o then_o the_o danger_n of_o this_o dart_n be_v avoid_v and_o that_o it_o be_v reason_n we_o shall_v follow_v they_o no_o further_o we_o may_v learn_v in_o that_o paul_n himself_o 1._o cor._n 11._o require_v no_o further_a to_o be_v follow_v then_o he_o follow_v christ_n but_o you_o have_v a_o further_a reason_n not_o to_o be_v move_v from_o your_o religion_n for_o our_o life_n be_v it_o never_o so_o godly_a because_o christ_n though_o he_o be_v without_o sin_n and_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n both_o by_o the_o ancient_a scripture_n and_o john_n baptist_n testimony_n yet_o he_o say_v that_o if_o he_o have_v not_o do_v in_o their_o presence_n the_o work_n and_o miracle_n that_o never_o man_n do_v before_o he_o they_o have_v have_v no_o sin_n john_n 15.24_o for_o hereof_o you_o gather_v that_o you_o may_v secure_o whatsoever_o we_o say_v unto_o you_o or_o howsoever_o we_o live_v refuse_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n and_o continue_v in_o your_o own_o still_o as_o long_o as_o we_o prove_v not_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o vocation_n and_o the_o goodness_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o miracle_n for_o you_o know_v no_o cause_n you_o say_v why_o we_o shall_v be_v more_o privilege_v than_o christ_n this_o argument_n you_o urge_v before_o cap._n 30._o and_o there_o i_o answer_v it_o where_o i_o have_v show_v you_o among_o diverse_a other_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v this_o especial_a reason_n that_o christ_n shall_v work_v such_o miracle_n as_o he_o do_v to_o prove_v himself_o the_o messiah_n because_o express_o the_o prophet_n have_v prophesy_v that_o he_o so_o shall_v when_o he_o come_v which_o reason_n you_o can_v show_v why_o now_o we_o shall_v work_v miracle_n for_o the_o prophecy_n that_o be_v give_v forth_o by_o paul_n 2._o thess_n 2._o
not_o amiss_o unto_o my_o former_a answer_n to_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n to_o annex_v this_o short_a answer_n thereunto_o his_o first_o sign_n of_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o say_v be_v their_o departure_n from_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o be_v baptize_v &_o first_o receive_v christian_n faith_n and_o religion_n and_o this_o to_o be_v such_o a_o sign_n he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n first_o epistle_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o say_v they_o depart_v from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v they_o will_v still_o have_v continue_v with_o us._n whereupon_o he_o think_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o say_v we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o we_o be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v thus_o depart_v from_o their_o common_a know_a catholic_a church_n faith_n and_o religion_n wherein_o we_o be_v first_o baptize_v and_o that_o we_o can_v say_v that_o they_o have_v so_o depart_v from_o we_o they_o still_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n that_o they_o first_o receive_v that_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v be_v enforce_v to_o grant_v that_o this_o sign_n agree_v to_o we_o and_o not_o to_o they_o this_o good_a christian_n that_o he_o have_v say_v be_v of_o foam_n force_n if_o he_o any_o or_o all_o his_o fellow_n together_o be_v ever_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o they_o their_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n be_v such_o as_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o when_o he_o so_o tax_v man_n for_o their_o departure_n therfrom_o but_o see_v only_o most_o beggarly_a all_o the_o pack_n of_o they_o this_o be_v the_o main_a question_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o always_o take_v this_o for_o grant_v they_o even_o for_o their_o bold_a impudent_a and_o importunate_a beg_n of_o it_o which_o we_o will_v never_o grant_v they_o nor_o they_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o win_v at_o our_o hand_n all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v herein_o be_v childish_a and_o vain_a for_o we_o be_v always_o most_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o join_v this_o issue_n with_o they_o for_o and_o about_o all_o the_o controversy_n among_o we_o that_o if_o we_o be_v not_o able_a by_o due_a conference_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o apostolic_a man_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n testify_v and_o extant_a in_o their_o own_o undoubted_a writing_n with_o we_o that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o same_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n faith_n and_o religion_n that_o they_o be_v and_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o the_o thing_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o be_v clean_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n her_o faith_n and_o religion_n that_o then_o be_v that_o then_o we_o will_v as_o he_o say_v most_o willing_o submit_v ourselves_o yield_v and_o recant_v and_o i_o hope_v in_o answer_v of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n upon_o occasion_n in_o sundry_a place_n i_o have_v so_o show_v the_o agreeablenesse_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o manifold_a disagreement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v from_o they_o and_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n plant_v by_o they_o as_o that_o every_o one_o even_o thereby_o sufficient_o may_v see_v that_o not_o we_o but_o they_o be_v the_o man_n that_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o that_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n faith_n and_o religion_n and_o that_o therefore_o this_o sign_n do_v so_o far_o better_o agree_v to_o papist_n then_o to_o we_o that_o if_o this_o offerer_n will_v be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n he_o must_v present_o submit_v himself_o yield_v and_o recant_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o manifest_a contrariety_n betwixt_o their_o doctrine_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n make_v manifest_a unto_o we_o by_o the_o view_n of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o the_o notorious_a difference_n betwixt_o their_o church_n practise_v now_o and_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o make_v likewise_o evident_a unto_o we_o by_o all_o sound_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o and_o their_o romish_a synagogue_n in_o these_o late_a day_n to_o embolden_v we_o to_o do_v as_o we_o have_v god_n from_o heaven_n by_o a_o angel_n say_v unto_o we_o go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n lest_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o so_o receive_v of_o her_o punishment_n apoc._n 18_o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o abraham_n to_o follow_v the_o lord_n call_v gen_n 12._o to_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n chaldea_n and_o to_o forsake_v the_o abomination_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v wisdom_n for_o lot_n at_o the_o admonition_n of_o the_o angel_n to_o go_v out_o of_o sodom_n gen._n 19_o and_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o christ_n and_o his_o shall_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o high_a priest_n scribes_z and_o pharisee_n and_o their_o error_n and_o superstition_n though_o they_o then_o &_o their_o follower_n brag_v that_o they_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n &_o his_o church_n so_o be_v it_o meet_v &_o requisite_a for_o we_o to_o depart_v as_o we_o have_v from_o their_o popish_a church_n and_o the_o popery_n thereof_o and_o as_o for_o our_o receive_v our_o baptism_n among_o they_o that_o bind_v we_o no_o more_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o still_o in_o their_o false_a &_o erroneous_a religion_n than_o the_o receive_n of_o circumcision_n bind_v christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n &_o those_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o beleve_v by_o their_o doctrine_n to_o continue_v fellowship_n with_o the_o blind_a and_o superstitious_a synagogue_n of_o the_o hard_a heart_a jew_n or_o the_o receive_n of_o baptism_n in_o former_a time_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n the_o arrian_n or_o any_o other_o such_o like_a bind_v they_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o such_o y●_z they_o may_v not_o separate_v themselves_o from_o such_o to_o return_v home_o again_o to_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n again_o if_o they_o think_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v always_o to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o religion_n whereof_o they_o be_v that_o baptize_v they_o why_o do_v they_o labour_v by_o their_o jesuit_n &_o seminary_n to_o seduce_v to_o their_o religion_n such_o as_o we_o have_v baptize_v but_o yet_o to_o touch_v they_o more_o near_o for_o all_o this_o brag_n of_o their_o still_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n they_o first_o receive_v let_v even_o their_o own_o baptism_n and_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n that_o they_o after_o profess_v be_v compare_v together_o and_o the_o contrary_n will_v appear_v for_o they_o be_v all_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n only_o of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v they_o be_v thereby_o they_o be_v bind_v only_o to_o believe_v in_o this_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n and_o yet_o afterwards_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o all_o other_o ancient_a creed_n teach_v they_o the_o same_o become_v plain_a apostate_n from_o this_o faith_n in_o believe_v in_o a_o number_n both_o of_o person_n and_o thing_n that_o without_o blasphemy_n they_o can_v count_v either_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n or_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proof_n and_o most_o palpable_a demonstration_n hereof_o be_v their_o belief_n in_o their_o own_o merit_n merit_n of_o other_o pope_n pardon_n hallow_v water_n &_o other_o hallow_v thing_n &_o their_o belief_n in_o and_o therefore_o pray_v unto_o saint_n &_o angel_n in_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n doubtless_o this_o form_n of_o baptism_n &_o these_o cree_v be_v preserve_v &_o continue_v among_o they_o not_o only_o to_o make_v it_o even_o thereby_o evident_a whatsoever_o any_o of_o they_o brag_v to_o the_o contrary_n never_o so_o oft_o that_o they_o be_v the_o man_n that_o daily_o depart_v both_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n first_o teach_v they_o &_o their_o forefather_n and_o after_o particular_o in_o their_o baptism_n confirm_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o but_o also_o to_o make_v they_o before_o both_o god_n &_o man_n without_o all_o excuse_n of_o their_o so_o gross_a apostasy_n from_o the_o same_o notwithstanding_o whereas_o they_o know_v &_o all_o the_o world_n else_o that_o know_v we_o know_v that_o we_o simple_o continue_v in_o this_o faith_n first_o deliver_v untd_v we_o brief_o by_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o these_o cree_v &_o daily_o seal_v unto_o we_o in_o our_o baptism_n &_o that_o even_o for_o that_o it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v so_o hate_v and_o persecute_v of_o
they_o that_o with_o they_o we_o will_v not_o run_v out_o from_o this_o church_n and_o faith_n to_o believe_v in_o a_o 1000_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o god_n as_o they_o do_v and_o therefore_o these_o thing_n consider_v by_o this_o note_n they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o antichristian_a false_a prophet_n heretic_n &_o schismatics_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o and_o not_o we_o his_o second_o sure_a mark_n sign_n and_o token_n of_o false_a prophet_n etc._n etc._n be_v say_v he_o that_o they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v of_o themselves_o &_o of_o their_o own_o authority_n without_o warrant_n be_v not_o send_v set_v up_o a_o new_a gospel_n a_o new_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o so_o by_o preach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n assemble_v and_o set_v up_o a_o new_a church_n and_o congregation_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o heb._n 5._o rom._n 10._o and_o exod._n 4._o be_v quote_v whence_o only_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o none_o may_v take_v upon_o they_o a_o office_n in_o god_n house_n without_o lawful_a call_n and_o warrant_n from_o he_o yet_o hereupon_o as_o though_o these_o be_v most_o pregnant_a place_n to_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o lawful_a call_n which_o the_o learned_a protestant_n can_v never_o prove_v to_o be_v in_o our_o call_n he_o promise_v likewise_o to_o yield_v and_o to_o recant_v when_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v our_o just_a and_o due_a vocation_n ordinary_o or_o extraordinary_o to_o proceed_v of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o of_o man_n by_o his_o own_o word_n in_o describe_v this_o note_n or_o mark_n two_o thing_n must_v concur_v to_o the_o make_n of_o it_o namely_o the_o preach_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n or_o gospel_n and_o the_o do_v of_o it_o without_o a_o just_a and_o due_a vocation_n from_o god_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o mark_n &_o in_o the_o apply_v it_o to_o we_o he_o forget_v altogether_o the_o former_a &_o make_v only_o show_v of_o proof_n for_o the_o late_a belike_o his_o own_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o insinuate_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v new_a that_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o able_a so_o much_o as_o to_o make_v any_o show_n that_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o so_o to_o be_v indeed_o and_o touch_v the_o other_o howsoever_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o he_o serve_v to_o prove_v a_o lawful_a call_n or_o send_v by_o god_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o and_o to_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v take_v any_o office_n upon_o they_o in_o his_o church_n yet_o they_o prove_v not_o at_o all_o that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n needful_a to_o the_o prove_v of_o our_o vocation_n to_o be_v such_o want_v in_o we_o neither_o do_v he_o name_v any_o thing_n require_v in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n to_o be_v in_o we_o which_o he_o can_v say_v we_o want_v which_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v to_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v see_v that_o with_o any_o probability_n he_o may_v have_v do_v it_o and_o therefore_o any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o even_o in_o this_o sign_n as_o in_o the_o former_a his_o only_a ground_n be_v a_o false_a supposition_n that_o those_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v grant_v he_o all_o which_o both_o most_o just_o and_o confident_o we_o always_o deny_v for_o without_o any_o proof_n or_o shadow_n of_o proof_n he_o in_o one_o period_n assume_v three_o thing_n against_o we_o most_o untrue_o &_o slanderous_o as_o at_o large_a in_o sundry_a place_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v i_o have_v make_v it_o manifest_a namely_o that_o we_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n that_o we_o have_v set_v up_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o that_o we_o have_v assemble_v a_o new_a church_n and_o congregation_n yea_o christian_n reader_n if_o thou_o will_v but_o vouchsafe_v by_o the_o table_n annex_v unto_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o say_v answer_v where_o these_o point_n be_v handle_v the_o antiquity_n of_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o newness_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o contrariety_n betwixt_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v &_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o counsel_n in_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o their_o priesthood_n and_o vocation_n thereunto_o &_o unto_o other_o prelacy_n among_o they_o and_o when_o thou_o have_v find_v they_o to_o read_v over_o wtout_fw-fr partiality_n what_o i_o have_v write_v hereof_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o thereby_o thou_o will_v see_v not_o only_o that_o he_o unjust_o have_v here_o charge_v we_o with_o these_o three_o fault_n but_o the_o most_o just_o we_o may_v charge_v they_o with_o them_z al._n and_o therefore_o thereunto_o refer_v thou_o for_o further_a answer_n unto_o this_o threefold_a charge_n of_o he_o in_o this_o place_n upon_o that_o which_o there_o thou_o shall_v find_v i_o hope_v with_o i_o thou_o will_v conclude_v that_o this_o be_v a_o mark_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o antichristian_a heretic_n as_o he_o say_v that_o it_o stand_v fair_a upon_o they_o and_o not_o upon_o we_o &_o therefore_o he_o shall_v recant_v the_o three_o sign_n &_o token_n that_o the_o offerer_n talk_v of_o be_v that_o such_o over_o and_o above_o the_o property_n touch_v in_o the_o two_o former_a do_v preach_v and_o teach_v contentious_o and_o seditious_o against_o the_o doctrine_n before_o time_n teach_v of_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o namely_o say_v he_o against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n church_n by_o a_o flat_a denial_n of_o many_o of_o they_o against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n against_o the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n propitiatory_a both_o for_o the_o live_v and_o the_o dead_a against_o penance_n &_o the_o worthy_a fruit_n thereof_o by_o fast_v watch_v and_o prayer_n &_o all_o straightness_n of_o life_n against_o vow_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o soul_n depart_v and_o final_o against_o the_o church_n itself_o flat_o deny_v that_o christ_n have_v here_o upon_o earth_n any_o spouse_n or_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v hear_v speak_v perceive_v or_o see_v the_o ground_n of_o which_o sign_n he_o make_v that_o saying_n hebrues_n 13_o be_v you_o not_o carry_v away_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n so_o term_v of_o the_o apostle_n as_o he_o expound_v he_o because_o they_o agree_v not_o but_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o receive_a and_o common_a know_v doctrine_n of_o christ_n holy_a catholic_a church_n whereupon_o he_o grow_v to_o his_o conclusion_n that_o when_o the_o learned_a protestant_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o they_o and_o not_o we_o be_v by_o our_o preach_n of_o these_o strange_a doctrine_n the_o raiser_n up_o of_o these_o strife_n and_o contention_n than_o he_o will_v recant_v and_o not_o before_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o understand_v by_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v know_v and_o acknowledge_v so_o to_o be_v always_o of_o he_o and_o his_o faithful_a member_n than_o we_o grant_v that_o this_o be_v a_o right_a mark_n of_o such_o as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o and_o that_o worthy_o in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o hebrews_n all_o man_n be_v warn_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n from_o that_o which_o she_o have_v universal_o teach_v and_o receive_v but_o so_o take_v the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o otherwise_o i_o say_v it_o and_o have_v prove_v it_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v have_v too_o long_o and_o do_v still_o not_o only_o contentious_o and_o seditious_o but_o also_o furious_o tyrannical_o bloude_o and_o every_o way_n antichristian_o preach_v against_o the_o doctrine_n before_o time_n teach_v by_o she_o and_o common_o receive_v and_o profess_v by_o she_o touch_v the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o office_n of_o christ_n &_o faith_n in_o he_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o work_v and_o of_o prayer_n and_o the_o sacrament_n and_o almost_o of_o all_o other_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o thus_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o must_v understand_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o either_o he_o will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a sign_n of_o heretic_n or_o to_o be_v think_v right_o to_o have_v expound_v the_o 13._o to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o therefore_o understand_v by_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n
that_o which_o he_o shall_v this_o mark_n be_v evident_a upon_o they_o and_o not_o upon_o us._n but_o if_o by_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o talk_v of_o here_o and_o always_o else_o he_o understand_v as_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o he_o do_v their_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v most_o beggarly_a still_o he_o beg_v that_o alm_n that_o never_o a_o honest_a and_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o world_n will_v give_v he_o for_o in_o all_o these_o point_n here_o name_v by_o he_o that_o synagogue_n a_o long_a time_n have_v teach_v and_o do_v still_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a and_o chaste_a spouse_n of_o christ_n that_o though_o nether_a seditious_o nor_o contentious_o yet_o vehement_o and_o earnest_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o all_o skilful_a painful_a and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o cry_v out_o against_o she_o and_o she_o so_o do_v and_o thus_o only_o have_v we_o and_o do_v we_o labour_v to_o manifest_v unto_o the_o world_n their_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n in_o these_o point_n lest_o thereby_o to_o their_o perdition_n they_o shall_v be_v seduce_v by_o they_o otherwise_o whatsoever_o he_o say_v neither_o he_o nor_o all_o his_o faction_n shall_v ever_o he_o able_a to_o prove_v against_o we_o that_o we_o either_o deny_v any_o thing_n or_o hold_v otherwise_o of_o any_o point_n here_o reckon_v up_o by_o he_o than_o we_o have_v most_o sound_a and_o good_a warrant_n for_o both_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a and_o sound_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n but_o where_o as_o he_o say_v that_o we_o flat_o deny_v that_o christ_n have_v here_o upon_o earth_n any_o spouse_n or_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v hear_v speak_v perceave_v or_o see_v he_o shameful_o and_o untrue_o report_v y●_z of_o us._n only_o concern_v the_o visibility_n or_o not_o visibility_n of_o christ_n church_n this_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o who_o be_v the_o right_a member_n thereof_o whereof_o proper_o she_o do_v consist_v it_o be_v not_o discerneable_a by_o humane_a sense_n but_o know_v only_o unto_o god_n and_o unto_o those_o to_o who_o god_n give_v spiritual_a sense_n to_o discern_v it_o withal_o but_o if_o otherwise_o by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n be_v understand_v general_o all_o those_o that_o by_o outward_a profession_n seem_v unto_o man_n to_o be_v thereof_o than_o we_o hold_v and_o confess_v that_o christ_n have_v always_o have_v here_o upon_o earth_n since_o the_o beginning_n and_o will_v have_v to_o the_o end_n a_o visible_a spouse_n and_o church_n to_o be_v both_o hear_v speak_v perceive_v &_o see_v though_o not_o always_o alike_o nor_o of_o all_o sort_n &_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o first_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o we_o deny_v be_v that_o it_o always_o have_v be_v and_o ever_o must_v be_v so_o visible_a and_o apparent_a both_o for_o multitude_n and_o government_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v able_a thereby_o not_o only_o to_o discern_v it_o but_o from_o time_n to_o time_n down_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o name_v the_o principal_a person_n by_o who_o orderly_a succession_n one_o to_o another_o wtout_fw-fr interruption_n it_o have_v be_v continue_v in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o now_o hereupon_o to_o infer_v that_o we_o simple_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v hear_v see_v or_o perceive_v argue_v that_o they_o that_o do_v so_o be_v grow_v so_o gross_a that_o they_o can_v neither_o hear_v see_v nor_o perceive_v that_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n &_o the_o simple_a be_v thereof_o john_n that_o never_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n shall_v neither_o be_v hear_v see_v or_o perceive_v yet_o teach_v re._n 12._o that_o she_o will_v be_v drive_v by_o persecution_n of_o the_o dragon_n into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o for_o a_o time_n in_o comparison_n that_o she_o be_v before_o she_o shall_v be_v hide_v christ_n that_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n mat._n 16._o yet_o foreshow_v that_o towards_o his_o second_o come_v true_a faith_n shall_v hardly_o be_v find_v upon_o earth_n luke_n 18._o and_o do_v we_o not_o read_v 2_o thessalonian_o 2._o and_o 1._o timothy_n 4._o to_o that_o end_n that_o before_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a depart_n from_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o that_o which_o we_o read_v revelation_n 17_o and_o 18._o we_o may_v understand_v shall_v be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o far_o prevail_v that_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n there_o figure_v unto_o we_o antichrist_n and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v have_v universality_n and_o all_o outward_a pomp_n that_o may_v be_v so_o on_o her_o side_n that_o she_o shall_v make_v king_n and_o people_n yea_o all_o nation_n drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n during_o the_o fulfil_n of_o which_o prophecy_n if_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o some_o either_o to_o hear_v or_o see_v the_o church_n or_o to_o understand_v where_o she_o be_v so_o that_o they_o can_v name_v the_o person_n successive_o that_o she_o consist_v of_o no_o marvel_n for_o distance_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o ignorance_n or_o unfaithfulnesse_n in_o chronicler_n join_v with_o a_o special_a care_n that_o antichrist_n will_v always_o by_o all_o likelihood_n have_v to_o keep_v from_o man_n all_o mean_n to_o make_v they_o to_o have_v knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n lest_o thereby_o in_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v fall_v into_o his_o consumption_n in_o respect_n of_o sundry_a former_a time_n and_o we_o that_o live_v now_o may_v make_v this_o impossible_a and_o yet_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v so_o do_v not_o simple_o say_v as_o he_o here_o charge_v us._n but_o god_n name_n be_v bless_v for_o it_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v never_o so_o drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n by_o the_o dragon_n or_o oppress_v by_o antichrist_n but_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o four_o chapter_n of_o my_o foresay_v answer_n to_o albine_v some_o have_v so_o hear_v see_v and_o perceive_v where_o she_o be_v and_o who_o be_v her_o true_a member_n at_o all_o time_n that_o there_o be_v never_o time_n or_o state_n of_o the_o church_n so_o bad_a but_z that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o name_v some_o of_o her_o friend_n and_o where_o they_o live_v or_o die_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o her_o truth_n against_o antichristian_a abomination_n as_o for_o the_o other_o points_z here_o reckon_v up_o by_o he_o gentle_a reader_n though_o he_o will_v make_v thou_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o in_o every_o point_n as_o they_o teach_v they_o now_o have_v always_o before_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v nothing_o so_o as_o in_o great_a part_n i_o have_v show_v in_o answer_v of_o albine_n &_o as_o other_o thorough_o &_o universal_o have_v show_v of_o they_o all_o in_o several_a book_n write_v against_o they_o for_o their_o antichristian_a doctrine_n therein_o howbeit_o lest_o by_o his_o word_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o thou_o get_v leisure_n to_o peruse_v what_o we_o have_v write_v concern_v these_o point_n thou_o shall_v conceive_v worse_o of_o our_o doctrine_n they_o in_o any_o show_n we_o deserve_v understand_v that_o we_o preach_v against_o none_o of_o christ_n sacrament_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v any_o sacrament_n of_o he_o in_o that_o sense_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o he_o appoint_v it_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v christ_n real_a true_a &_o most_o certain_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o right_a receiver_n only_o a_o gross_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n to_o the_o mouth_n of_o every_o receiver_n fancy_v by_o they_o contrary_a both_o to_o scripture_n &_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n &_o of_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o presence_n that_o there_o we_o deny_v indeed_o we_o as_o zealous_o as_o we_o can_v preach_v against_o their_o mass_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v any_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n either_o for_o quick_a or_o dead_a much_o less_o for_o both_o because_o we_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o only_a christ_n be_v consecrate_v of_o his_o father_n as_o the_o fit_a priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o own_o person_n once_o for_o all_o to_o offer_v propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n &_o that_o we_o learn_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n that_o it_o be_v never_o institute_v to_o repeat_v that_o but_o with_o faith_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o make_v a_o commemoration_n thereof_o and_o rather_o to_o offer_v and_o deliver_v christ_n to_o we_o they_o
ever_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v heb._n 10._o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v perfect_o those_o that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o he._n 7._o that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 1._o tim._n 2._o and_o that_o s._n paul_n most_o confident_o tell_v the_o galathian_o that_o if_o with_o that_o opinion_n that_o the_o false_a apostle_n have_v teach_v they_o they_o will_v be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v they_o nothing_o at_o all_o they_o be_v fall_v from_o grace_n gal._n 5._o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o plain_a evidence_n of_o these_o scripture_n and_o sundry_a other_o place_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n so_o give_v be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v and_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n to_o spoil_v christ_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o this_o special_a honour_n &_o glory_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o that_o it_o can_v abide_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n worse_o than_o that_o man_n shall_v he_o drive_v by_o the_o schoolmaster_n the_o law_n out_o of_o themselves_o quite_o in_o christ_n full_o and_o free_o sole_o and_o whole_o by_o faith_n to_o seek_v for_o their_o justification_n here_o and_o salvation_n hereafter_o and_o therefore_o in_o it_o that_o in_o the_o deep_a policy_n of_o satan_n to_o blunt_v the_o edge_n of_o the_o law_n that_o it_o have_v not_o this_o force_n to_o break_v and_o make_v contrite_a the_o heart_n of_o man_n with_o the_o ugly_a sight_n of_o his_o own_o infinite_a sin_n and_o punishment_n due_a unto_o he_o for_o the_o same_o to_o drive_v he_o to_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o that_o effectual_a justification_n and_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o man_n by_o the_o gospel_n in_o christ_n they_o teach_v that_o man_n have_v freewill_n to_o good_a that_o concupiscence_n or_o the_o first_o motion_n to_o sin_n rise_v in_o man_n not_o consent_v unto_o be_v no_o sin_n that_o many_o sin_n even_o for_o their_o own_o littleness_n be_v venial_a that_o by_o good_a deed_n man_n may_v satisfy_v god_n for_o his_o misdeed_n that_o man_n may_v fulfil_v the_o law_n yea_o that_o man_n may_v have_v work_n of_o supererogation_n more_o than_o he_o need_v for_o his_o own_o salvation_n and_o that_o man_n by_o their_o work_n may_v merit_v a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o own_o salvation_n yea_o have_v merit_n both_o before_o justification_n flow_v from_o their_o pure_a natural_a faculty_n and_o power_n to_o provoke_v god_n to_o think_v it_o congruum_fw-la that_o be_v meet_v and_o convenient_a that_o even_o therefore_o he_o shall_v bestow_v his_o grace_n upon_o they_o and_o after_o merit_n de_fw-la condigno_fw-la that_o even_o for_o their_o very_a worthiness_n deserve_v a_o everlasting_a reward_n of_o bliss_n at_o god_n hand_n both_o for_o themselves_o and_o other_o and_o when_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v come_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o yet_o in_o no_o case_n will_v they_o trust_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o that_o that_o he_o have_v do_v and_o still_o do_v for_o they_o but_o then_o his_o suffering_n and_o their_o own_o his_o merit_n and_o their_o own_o and_o their_o friend_n his_o sacrifice_n and_o their_o own_o in_o their_o mass_n his_o mediation_n and_o the_o mediation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o a_o hundred_o thing_n else_o even_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a for_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n must_v be_v trust_v unto_o that_o it_o be_v thus_o all_o the_o world_n see_v and_o they_o themselves_o in_o print_a book_n stand_v upon_o it_o that_o it_o must_v be_v thus_o and_o that_o we_o be_v heretic_n because_o we_o will_v not_o let_v they_o alone_o in_o thus_o apparel_v themselves_o their_o friend_n and_o their_o toy_n with_o the_o spoil_n of_o our_o christ_n and_o so_o their_o very_a glory_n be_v their_o shame_n a_o christ_n that_o be_v so_o base_a mind_v in_o the_o office_n of_o justify_v and_o save_v of_o man_n soul_n thus_o to_o be_v jumble_a and_o join_v with_o so_o many_o partner_n and_o helper_n be_v a_o christ_n of_o their_o own_o devise_v such_o a_o one_o doubtless_o as_o we_o can_v hear_v no_o news_n of_o either_o in_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o out_o of_o all_o question_n they_o shall_v find_v that_o while_o they_o run_v a_o mad_a after_o this_o fancied_a new_a christ_n of_o their_o own_o the_o old_a true_a christ_n will_v profit_v they_o nothing_o at_o all_o and_o that_o they_o be_v quite_o fall_v from_o grace_n no_o man_n who_o eye_n god_n have_v open_v aright_o either_o to_o understand_v the_o law_n or_o the_o gospel_n but_o see_v and_o know_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a of_o they_o he_o must_v needs_o think_v and_o be_v resolve_v that_o popery_n be_v even_o that_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n that_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o 2._o thess_n 2._o and_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v flat_a those_o flase_n teacher_n that_o saint_n peter_n speak_v of_o 2._o epistle_n chap._n 3._o which_o privy_o shall_v bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n even_o deny_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v buy_v they_o and_o so_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n who_o yet_o many_o shall_v follow_v and_o by_o who_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n shall_v be_v evil_o speak_v of_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v needful_a therefore_o i_o will_v think_v especial_o consider_v how_o earnest_a saint_n peter_n be_v there_o to_o persuade_v man_n to_o shun_v such_o for_o we_o to_o leave_v they_o and_o forsake_v they_o as_o we_o have_v the_o thing_n which_o in_o this_o behalf_n we_o have_v especial_o to_o mourn_v for_o be_v that_o we_o forsake_v they_o no_o soon_o howbeit_o though_o the_o better_a to_o countenance_v their_o church_n and_o religion_n and_o to_o prove_v we_o in_o thus_o forsake_v of_o they_o to_o have_v bring_v in_o such_o a_o schism_n as_o he_o talk_v of_o he_o will_v make_v thou_o christian_n reader_n believe_v that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v at_o unity_n with_o they_o in_o their_o faith_n &_o and_o false_a brag_n as_o if_o thou_o read_v the_o four_o chapter_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v and_o the_o 11._o &_o 37._o thou_o shall_v most_o plain_o see_v it_o seem_v the_o man_n be_v very_o impudent_a or_o very_o childish_o ignorant_a of_o history_n that_o will_v thus_o write_v for_o who_o of_o any_o learning_n or_o read_v be_v ignorant_a that_o not_o only_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n some_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o time_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o break_v of_o communion_n with_o they_o but_o that_o also_o even_o here_o in_o these_o western_a part_n in_o france_n bohemia_n here_o in_o england_n and_o elswher_o long_o before_o this_o time_n petrus_n valdus_n john_n wickliff_n john_n hus_n &_o hierom_n of_o prage_n have_v so_o many_o follower_n and_o partaker_n against_o they_o and_o their_o abomination_n that_o for_o all_o the_o tyranny_n and_o most_o savage_a persecution_n that_o they_o have_v use_v to_o root_v they_o out_o by_o from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v continue_v do_v &_o will_v still_o in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o maugre_o all_o their_o malice_n even_o to_o recompense_v that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n as_o she_o have_v deserve_v at_o their_o hand_n as_o for_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o we_o that_o he_o upbrayd_v we_o withal_o it_o be_v a_o objection_n that_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n often_o harp_v upon_o &_o therefore_o which_o in_o answer_v of_o he_o i_o have_v sufficient_o i_o hope_v answer_v only_o this_o therefore_o to_o y●_z i_o further_o say_v here_o that_o though_o they_o be_v more_o and_o great_a than_o we_o like_v of_o yet_o they_o be_v nether_a so_o great_a nor_o many_o as_o these_o our_o adversary_n by_o amplify_a of_o this_o objection_n &_o by_o multiply_v of_o name_n will_v seem_v to_o make_v they_o nor_o yet_o in_o such_o point_n but_o that_o notwithstanding_o we_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o fundamental_a &_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o christian_n religion_n whereby_o we_o hope_v it_o will_v through_o god_n goodness_n come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o shall_v short_o also_o grow_v to_o unity_n in_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o they_o who_o by_o any_o reason_n he_o may_v say_v be_v of_o we_o for_o our_o hold_a fellowship_n and_o communion_n together_o in_o our_o confession_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n be_v all_o among_o ourselves_o at_o far_o more_o unity_n than_o such_o as_o he_o like_v of_o &_o at_o far_o better_a unity_n than_o they_o be_v or_o ever_o have_v be_v since_o they_o depart_v from_o us._n as_o for_o the_o anabaptist_n &_o diverse_a other_o who_o sometime_o they_o charge_v we_o in_o this_o case_n also_o withal_o they_o know_v well_o enough_o we_o
to_o be_v christian_n and_o of_o he_o only_o and_o of_o his_o undoubted_a spirit_n speak_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v we_o learn_v our_o religion_n with_o which_o as_o far_o as_o we_o find_v any_o man_n to_o agree_v we_o reverence_v he_o as_o it_o become_v we_o in_o the_o lord_n &_o further_o we_o take_v not_o ourselves_o bind_v to_o follow_v any_o man_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o puritan_n and_o precisian_n have_v bring_v the_o ancient_a protestant_n of_o this_o land_n of_o all_o sort_n to_o any_o such_o point_n by_o any_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o speak_v both_o untrue_o and_o slanderous_o for_o such_o as_o for_o their_o preposterous_a zeal_n and_o factious_a turbulent_a spirit_n among_o we_o deserve_v so_o to_o be_v call_v and_o account_v neither_o be_v for_o number_n so_o many_o nor_o for_o credit_n so_o affect_v of_o the_o common_a people_n nor_o wink_v at_o of_o the_o magestrat_n as_o he_o pretend_v but_o if_o there_o be_v as_o many_o fond_a sectary_n that_o have_v arisen_a up_o among_o we_o these_o late_a year_n as_o this_o man_n and_o other_o of_o his_o fellow_n sometime_o will_v have_v man_n to_o believe_v as_o long_o yet_o as_o we_o for_o all_o that_o continue_v constant_a not_o only_o in_o the_o very_a same_o religion_n that_o we_o be_v of_o when_o we_o first_o break_v of_o from_o they_o but_o also_o in_o that_o which_o have_v plentiful_a and_o most_o plain_a warrant_n both_o from_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o all_o sound_a antiquity_n as_o we_o have_v a_o thousand_o time_n show_v and_o yet_o still_o be_v willing_a and_o ready_a always_o to_o do_v why_o shall_v they_o thus_o odious_o be_v object_v against_o we_o to_o disgrace_n either_o we_o or_o our_o religion_n especial_o see_v we_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o show_v our_o mislike_n thereof_o as_o we_o do_v may_v any_o man_n just_o disgrace_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o apostolic_a church_n for_o that_o even_o in_o their_o time_n there_o arise_v so_o many_o sectary_n and_o heretic_n among_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o as_o both_o by_o their_o own_o writing_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a history_n it_o be_v notorious_o know_v there_o do_v have_v not_o christ_n even_o of_o purpose_n to_o prevent_v all_o offence_n take_v hereat_o compare_v his_o kingdom_n matth._n 13._o to_o a_o field_n wherein_o the_o good_a seedsman_n have_v sow_v good_a wheat_n the_o envious_a man_n so_o sow_v his_o tare_n that_o they_o come_v up_o together_o with_o the_o wheat_n and_o so_o will_v do_v unto_o the_o harvest_n to_o let_v vain_a word_n and_o brag_n go_v let_v they_o prove_v but_o once_o any_o of_o they_o or_o all_o of_o they_o together_o either_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o plain_a way_n of_o salvation_n beat_v by_o our_o forefather_n for_o these_o 1500._o year_n past_a or_o that_o we_o be_v not_o that_o very_a truth_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v as_o a_o perpetual_a truth_n for_o the_o true_a church_n constant_o to_o hold_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o we_o will_v strive_v with_o they_o no_o long_o but_o as_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n too_o hard_a &_o heavy_a for_o they_o so_o they_o be_v content_a to_o let_v it_o alone_o and_o with_o fallacy_n &_o vain_a word_n to_o try_v if_o they_o can_v beguile_v the_o simple_a people_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o mislike_v of_o that_o which_o to_o mislike_v indeed_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v they_o one_o sound_a reason_n and_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v that_o both_o beginning_n end_v and_o always_o this_o man_n may_v be_v like_o himself_o he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o sound_a catholic_a faith_n that_o the_o martyr_n sebastian_n mean_v by_o his_o loaf_n which_o break_v and_o break_v again_o after_o it_o be_v once_o well_o make_v and_o bake_v by_o sectary_n &_o heretic_n as_o he_o tell_v genserichus_n the_o tyrant_n will_v never_o become_v better_o and_o that_o we_o be_v but_o a_o break_n of_o it_o to_o make_v it_o better_o again_o which_o will_v never_o be_v whereas_o we_o constant_o hold_v &_o affirm_v that_o we_o may_v just_o say_v to_o all_o papist_n even_o as_o sebastian_n say_v to_o that_o tyrant_n for_o the_o loaf_n that_o we_o feed_v on_o and_o will_v have_v all_o other_o to_o feed_v on_o with_o we_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v be_v that_o the_o grain_n whereof_o christ_n himself_o by_o his_o faithful_a servant_n have_v sow_v in_o the_o sound_a field_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v ground_n kneaden_a &_o bake_v for_o we_o and_o for_o all_o his_o child_n and_o likewise_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o this_o fine_a white_a loaf_n of_o the_o lord_n own_o prepare_v always_o lie_v ready_a in_o the_o storehouse_n of_o his_o write_v word_n the_o romish_n church_n have_v a_o long_a time_n &_o do_v still_o as_o much_o loath_a as_o ever_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v manna_n and_o therefore_o as_o they_o prefer_v in_o their_o conceit_n garlic_n leek_n &_o onion_n &_o the_o fleshpot_n of_o egypt_n before_o that_o heavenly_a food_n so_o have_v she_o and_o do_v she_o a_o massive_a loaf_n the_o corn_n whereof_o must_v not_o come_v only_o out_o of_o the_o foresay_v field_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o than_o it_o will_v have_v no_o favour_n with_o they_o but_o in_o great_a part_n out_o of_o the_o rot_a field_n of_o man_n tradition_n &_o invention_n before_o the_o pure_a white_a loaf_n of_o the_o lord_n own_o make_v wherefore_o to_o conclude_v all_o his_o speech_n or_o exhortation_n ground_v upon_o this_o story_n out_o of_o victor_n de_fw-fr persecutione_n vandalorum_fw-mi any_o man_n may_v see_v we_o may_v far_v more_o just_o use_v against_o themselves_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n to_o persuade_v they_o as_o they_o regard_v their_o own_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n to_o content_v themselves_o with_o we_o with_o this_o sebastian_n loaf_n of_o the_o first_o and_o best_a make_v i_o have_v thus_o thou_o see_v good_a reader_n but_o brief_o pass_v over_o these_o thing_n and_o the_o rather_o i_o have_v so_o do_v first_o because_o i_o find_v no_o matter_n in_o they_o but_o ground_v upon_o shameless_a beg_n of_o that_o which_o be_v most_o in_o question_n and_o second_o because_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v i_o have_v upon_o occasion_n give_v i_o by_o he_o already_o answer_v all_o or_o most_o of_o his_o assumption_n against_o we_o in_o the_o apply_v of_o these_o sign_n unto_o us._n but_o last_o by_o view_n of_o a_o answer_n make_v at_o large_a by_o master_n crowley_n both_o to_o the_o 22._o demand_n and_o these_o six_o sign_n also_o that_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n since_o my_o finish_n of_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o i_o see_v if_o it_o have_v be_v undo_v i_o may_v well_o have_v spare_v all_o my_o labour_n herein_o if_o therefore_o thou_o desire_v any_o further_a answer_n concern_v any_o of_o these_o i_o refer_v thou_o to_o he_o and_o thus_o i_o take_v my_o leave_n of_o thou_o beseech_v the_o lord_n now_o and_o ever_o to_o bless_v both_o thou_o and_o i_o and_o hearty_o pray_v thou_o to_o remember_v i_o always_o in_o thy_o godly_a prayer_n to_o god_n to_o who_o be_v all_o glory_n praise_n and_o dominion_n now_o and_o ever_o thou_o in_o the_o lord_n thomas_n spark_n a_o table_n whereby_o ready_o to_o find_v out_o the_o principal_a matter_n contain_v in_o the_o former_a answer_n to_o albine_n or_o any_o of_o his_o favourer_n wherein_o because_o until_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o answer_n to_o albine_v himself_o the_o page_n be_v not_o figure_v in_o the_o top_n as_o in_o the_o rest_n for_o any_o thing_n before_o handle_v the_o page_n of_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o bottom_n of_o those_o leaf_n whereof_o there_o be_v 16_o for_o every_o letter_n be_v note_v for_o thy_o direction_n a._n abbey_n why_o and_o how_o suppress_v pa._n 287._o albine_v convict_v of_o blasphemy_n p._n 95._o 96._o 186._o 375._o 378._o albine_n show_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v of_o a_o profane_a spirit_n 269._o albines_n publisher_n method_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n discover_v b._n p._n 11._o 12._o &_o 13._o albine_v own_o method_n and_o the_o folly_n thereof_o lay_v open_a e._n 4_o 5._o 6_o albine_n cunning_a in_o run_v from_o the_o question_n 6_o 7_o 9_o 10._o 11._o etc._n etc._n albine_v notorious_a in_o abuse_v scripture_n 2._o 3._o 36._o 37._o albine_v worthy_a to_o be_v famous_a for_o abuse_v of_o father_n 47._o 51._o 85._o 86._o 119._o etc._n etc._n 126._o etc._n etc._n 131_o 134_o 156._o &_o ca_fw-mi p._n 37._o through_o out_o antiquity_n protestant_n rather_o have_v than_o papist_n and_o true_a antiquity_n protestant_n stand_n unto_o 102._o 158._o etc._n etc._n auricular_a confession_n dangerous_a e._n p._n
9_o &_o p._n 322._o auricular_a confession_n confute_v at_o large_a c_o 37._o p._n 322._o &c_n &c_n b._n baptism_n and_o the_o ceremony_n at_o large_a speak_v of_o 308._o etc._n etc._n baptism_n that_o be_v outward_a sometime_o separate_v from_o regeneration_n 280._o etc._n etc._n baptism_n bind_v not_o always_o the_o baptise_a to_o be_v of_o his_o religion_n that_o baptise_a he_o p._n 395._o 410._o bid_v always_o intermingle_v with_o good_a 404._o beza_n defend_v against_o albine_n slander_n 400_o bondage_n under_o popery_n as_o great_a as_o israel_n under_o pharaoh_n 170._o etc._n etc._n bohemian_o do_n consider_v and_o defend_v 291._o etc._n etc._n c._n caluins_n argument_n against_o the_o popish_a priesthood_n that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n unanswered_a by_o albine_n p._n 5._o ceremony_n popish_a how_o and_o when_o many_o of_o they_o come_v in_o and_o how_o withstand_v c._n p._n 15._o &_o 16._o collier_n faith_n what_o it_o be_v 222_o christ_n will_v be_v a_o whole_a and_o sole_a saviour_n or_o else_o no_o saviour_n at_o all_o 419._o christ_n church_n perpetual_a but_o not_o always_o visible_a in_o the_o popish_a sense_n 37._o etc._n etc._n &_o 122._o 413._o etc._n etc._n church_n why_o call_v catholic_a and_o so_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a p._n 360._o contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o christian_n no_o news_n &_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o prejudice_n the_o truth_n 68_o 69._o 250._o contentious_a popish_a many_o and_o great_a 70._o 71._o 97._o 252._o etc._n etc._n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n when_o and_o by_o who_o it_o come_v in_o 161._o caiphas_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n as_o albine_n will_v seem_v he_o have_v 94._o 95_o cruelty_n of_o papist_n in_o seek_v to_o prevail_v &_o to_o stand_v by_o force_n 155._o etc._n etc._n 291._o etc._n etc._n cathechise_v in_o popery_n how_o bad_a it_o have_v be_v 179._o etc._n etc._n counsel_n have_v err_v and_o that_o even_a papist_n confess_v 230._o etc._n etc._n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v but_o a_o new_a devise_n 159._o christ_n be_v to_o prove_v his_o call_n by_o miracle_n and_o yet_o not_o we_o 188._o etc._n etc._n &_o 403._o d._n dedicate_a of_o book_n to_o great_a person_n have_v good_a and_o ancient_a precedent_n a._n p._n 11._o and_o 12._o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v lawful_a 149._o 394._o 417._o etc._n etc._n 409._o etc._n etc._n e._n education_n bind_v not_o the_o party_n to_o be_v always_o of_o their_o religion_n that_o bring_v he_o up_o 181._o to_o be_v read_v but_o not_o so_o as_o to_o discourage_v the_o simple_a from_o the_o study_n of_o they_o 205._o 208_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n allege_v in_o their_o true_a sense_n the_o ground_n that_o protestant_n stand_v upon_o 205_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n though_o never_o so_o much_o abuse_v by_o heretic_n yet_o by_o they_o they_o must_v be_v confute_v 226._o scripture_n must_v expound_v scripture_n 47._o 210._o 224._o scripture_n they_o which_v allege_v best_a they_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v 245_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n must_v try_v who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 222_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n be_v to_o be_v study_v and_o read_v of_o all_o man_n 209_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n shameful_o speak_v of_o by_o papist_n the_o better_a to_o shun_v trial_n by_o they_o 82_o etc._n etc._n 212_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n fond_o allege_v and_o apply_v by_o papist_n 35_o etc._n etc._n 218._o scripture_n in_o some_o sense_n may_v well_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n 87._o 393._o scripture_n whether_o rightly_a allege_v by_o protestant_n or_o papist_n examine_v 215._o 216._o &c_n &c_n scripture_n be_v so_o allege_v by_o protestant_n that_o they_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o neither_o papist_n nor_o heretic_n 215_o etc._n etc._n scripture_n be_v both_o judge_v and_o witness_v 262._o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sound_a touchstone_n both_o of_o truth_n church_n &_o al._n 33_o etc._n etc._n 46_o etc._n etc._n 244_o 406._o scripture_n by_o papist_n thought_n never_o to_o be_v sound_o interpret_v but_o according_a to_o the_o present_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 214._o 219._o sin_n be_v more_o stricte_o condemn_v by_o protestant_n then_o by_o papist_n 285._o 404._o succession_n papist_n have_v neither_o personal_a 25_o etc._n etc._n succession_n papist_n have_v neither_o local_a 25_o etc._n etc._n succession_n papist_n have_v neither_o not_o real_a 21_o etc._n etc._n 27_o succession_n popish_a we_o reject_v not_o so_o much_o for_o their_o bad_a life_n as_o doctrine_n 92._o 301._o succession_n neither_o local_a nor_o personal_a any_o certain_a note_n of_o truth_n 27_o etc._n etc._n succession_n in_o the_o truth_n the_o only_a succession_n indeed_o to_o be_v stand_v simple_o upon_o 31_o etc._n etc._n supper_n of_o the_o lord_n wonderful_o pervert_v of_o the_o papist_n 31._o 416._o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n new_a how_o &_o by_o who_o it_o come_v up_o and_o by_o who_o still_o resist_v p._n 11._o &c_n &c_n 161._o etc._n etc._n t._n tradition_n beside_o the_o word_n write_v countenance_v by_o abuse_v of_o irenaeus_n and_o other_o p._n 1_o &_o 2._o 76_o etc._n etc._n tradition_n unwriten_a the_o ground_n of_o popery_n c._n p._n 5._o p._n 82._o tradition_n beside_o and_o contrary_n to_o the_o word_n write_v reject_v by_o the_o father_n c._n 2._o p._n 46_o 78._o etc._n etc._n 224._o etc._n etc._n tradition_n speak_v for_o and_o allow_v by_o the_o father_n always_o warrant_v by_o the_o scripture_n c._n p._n 2_o &_o 3._o tradition_n unwriten_a heretic_n common_o fly_v unto_o even_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v p._n 5_o &_o 6_o 33._o transubstantiation_n when_o it_o come_v in_o and_o how_o confute_v d._n 7_o &_o 8._o p._n 109._o tree_n that_o be_v good_a bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n that_o be_v to_o be_v take_v 274_o 278._o etc._n etc._n truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o custom_n &_o all_o thing_n else_o c._n p._n 7._o 86._o 100_o 406._o truth_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o bishop_n mouth_n and_o chair_n 28._o 29._o 94._o 95._o 151._o etc._n etc._n truth_n be_v most_o ancient_a and_o that_o be_v it_o that_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n 102._o turk_n and_o jew_n take_v occasion_n the_o more_o to_o be_v harden_v for_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o image_n and_o transubstantiation_n 217._o v._o visible_a &_o demonstrable_a succession_n be_v neither_o certain_a note_n of_o church_n not_o truth_n 28_o ●7_n etc._n etc._n 51._o unity_n and_o christian_a peace_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n though_o the_o rite_n be_v diverse_a 312._o etc._n etc._n unity_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o verity_n man_n be_v not_o to_o continue_v in_o 417._o etc._n etc._n unity_n in_o every_o thing_n follow_v not_o upon_o right_a pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n 247._o etc._n etc._n unity_n papist_n have_v not_o though_o they_o brag_v thereof_o never_o so_o much_o 70._o 71._o 97._o 246._o 252._o universality_n indeed_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v not_o 388_o etc._n etc._n vocation_n ordinary_a have_v not_o always_o be_v find_v in_o they_o that_o have_v be_v mean_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n &_o that_o have_v profitable_o preach_v 30._o 123._o etc._n etc._n vocation_n may_v be_v good_a and_o lawful_a though_o the_o call_v have_v fault_n 131._o &_o vocation_n of_o what_o sort_n popish_a prelate_n have_v 14_o etc._n etc._n vow_n in_o popery_n foolish_a and_o superstitious_a 306._o etc._n etc._n w._n want_v and_o fault_n of_o the_o church_n to_o reform_v man_n be_v not_o bind_v only_o to_o use_v prayer_n 141._o way_n that_o be_v narrow_a both_o for_o life_n and_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o broad_a way_n 395._o etc._n etc._n work_n that_o be_v good_a indeed_o rather_o find_v with_o protestant_n they_o with_o papist_n 280._o etc._n etc._n 286._o 404._o finis_fw-la fault_n escape_v in_o print_v through_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o author_n the_o hardness_n and_o smallness_n of_o the_o hand_n wherein_o the_o copy_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o press_n and_o the_o unacquaintance_n of_o the_o overseer_n with_o the_o same_o a._n p._n 1_o l._n 26_o ●_o why_o for_o when_o 4._o 16._o before_o for_o unto_o b._n 1._o 7_o the_o for_o that_o l._n 33._o the_o for_o their_o 15._o 16_o for_o second_o 11._o &_o l._n 20_o when_o for_o who_o l._n 35_o for_o the_o their_o c._n 1._o 12_o prune_v for_o prove_v 7._o 12_o they_o for_o they_o &_o l._n 25_o put_v in_o i_o say_v next_o therefore_o 12._o 23_o for_o first_o sixth_o 15._o 11_o put_v out_o of_o dispose_v the_o first_o s_o d._n 2._o 9_o paula_n for_o pacta_fw-la and_o in_o armonians_n e_o for_o o_o and_o in_o moralia_fw-la be_v for_o l._n 6._o 9_o put_v in_o next_o they_o they_o do_v 7._o 1_o that_o for_o the_o 9_o 34_o